Selected quad for the lemma: religion_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
religion_n catholic_n church_n true_a 5,729 5 5.2515 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A33380 An historical defence of the Reformation in answer to a book intituled, Just-prejudices against the Calvinists / written in French by the reverend and learned Monsieur Claude ... ; and now faithfully translated into English by T.B., M.A.; Défense de la Réformation. English Claude, Jean, 1619-1687.; T. B., M.A. 1683 (1683) Wing C4593; ESTC R11147 475,014 686

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

principle_n of_o unity_n will_v they_o give_v we_o to_o settle_v all_o in_o the_o same_o thought_n in_o that_o search_n which_o they_o shall_v make_v of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o jew_n will_v say_v we_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n the_o mother_n church_n from_o which_o the_o christian_n have_v separate_v themselves_o the_o pagan_n will_v say_v we_o be_v that_o mother_n communion_n for_o as_o well_o the_o jew_n as_o the_o christian_n come_v out_o of_o the_o midst_n of_o we_o the_o mahometan_n will_v say_v that_o as_o christianity_n be_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o law_n so_o their_o religion_n be_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o greek_n will_v come_v forth_o and_o maintain_v that_o they_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n and_o not_o the_o latin_n the_o coptic_o the_o abyssine_n the_o jacobite_n and_o armenian_n maintain_v that_o as_o well_o the_o latin_n as_o the_o greek_n depart_v from_o the_o church_n when_o their_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v make_v void_a the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n the_o arian_n will_v say_v that_o if_o one_o latter_a council_n can_v abrogate_v what_o have_v be_v do_v by_o a_o former_a as_o it_o appear_v from_o the_o example_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n then_o that_o of_o ariminum_n may_v very_o well_o correct_v and_o repair_v the_o error_n of_o that_o of_o nice_n in_o fine_a every_o one_o will_v allege_v his_o reason_n and_o concern_v himself_o to_o know_v which_o of_o all_o those_o communion_n be_v the_o true_a and_o good_a one_o and_o which_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n tell_v we_o what_o mean_v of_o unity_n will_v you_o have_v beyond_o that_o to_o hinder_v man_n from_o divide_v themselves_o for_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o in_o yield_a man_n a_o right_a to_o examine_v the_o matter_n of_o religion_n they_o open_v a_o gate_n to_o let_v in_o division_n and_o heresy_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o confusion_n of_o man_n mind_n it_o be_v not_o less_o true_a that_o in_o leave_v they_o a_o liberty_n to_o examine_v those_o church_n and_o religious_a society_n to_o come_v to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a you_o open_v the_o same_o gate_n to_o error_n and_o apostasy_n if_o you_o will_v further_o take_v from_o they_o that_o liberty_n of_o search_v out_o the_o true_a church_n and_o if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o suppose_v the_o latin_a to_o be_v it_o without_o other_o reason_n beside_o that_o that_o be_v very_o absurd_a you_o introduce_v a_o maxim_n that_o under_o a_o pretence_n of_o shut_v the_o door_n to_o all_o division_n shut_v it_o also_o to_o all_o conversion_n for_o why_o shall_v not_o every_o society_n have_v right_a to_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n so_o the_o jew_n without_o any_o other_o reason_n will_v presume_v for_o the_o jewish_a communion_n the_o heathen_a for_o the_o heathen_a the_o greek_a for_o the_o greek_a and_o every_o one_o for_o that_o wherein_o he_o find_v himself_o set_v that_o then_o will_v not_o be_v so_o much_o a_o principle_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o true_a faith_n as_o a_o principle_n of_o confusion_n and_o obstinacy_n a_o principle_n that_o will_v be_v not_o so_o proper_a to_o keep_v man_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n as_o in_o that_o of_o any_o religion_n whatsoever_o it_o may_v be_v without_o come_v to_o know_v whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o bad_a in_o the_o second_o place_n i_o say_v that_o with_o all_o that_o they_o do_v not_o yet_o make_v any_o thing_n of_o that_o which_o they_o will_v lay_v down_o if_o they_o will_v avoid_v those_o heresy_n and_o those_o division_n which_o may_v arise_v from_o the_o inequality_n of_o humane_a understanding_n when_o man_n be_v leave_v to_o be_v master_n of_o their_o own_o sentiment_n for_o to_o obtain_v that_o effect_n they_o must_v suppose_v that_o that_o maxim_n of_o refer_v one_o self_n absolute_o to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o true_a church_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o assure_v will_v be_v receive_v and_o follow_v by_o all_o man_n but_o who_o can_v tell_v they_o that_o man_n will_v not_o divide_v upon_o that_o very_a principle_n and_o that_o when_o they_o endeavour_v to_o make_v they_o receive_v it_o they_o can_v make_v they_o agree_v if_o they_o apprehend_v so_o much_o those_o division_n and_o error_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n what_o assurance_n can_v they_o have_v that_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v any_o upon_o that_o point_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v it_o because_o man_n mind_n will_v less_o differ_v about_o that_o subject_n then_o about_o other_o or_o that_o that_o same_o authority_n prove_v itself_o as_o the_o first_o principle_n do_v who_o have_v tell_v they_o that_o those_o who_o shall_v once_o have_v receive_v this_o maxim_n will_v not_o be_v un-blinded_n in_o the_o end_n and_o that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v weary_a in_o fine_a of_o remain_v slave_n to_o man_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o conscience_n which_o be_v the_o most_o considerable_a part_n of_o themselves_o and_o that_o which_o shall_v give_v they_o the_o great_a jealousy_n so_o that_o that_o pretend_a remedy_n of_o schism_n and_o division_n be_v null_a for_o you_o must_v always_o run_v upon_o that_o rock_n you_o will_v avoid_v to_o wit_n of_o the_o humane_a understanding_n and_o wipe_v off_o its_o difference_n its_o inequality_n its_o humour_n at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o you_o will_v have_v they_o give_v away_o that_o liberty_n of_o judge_v the_o point_n of_o the_o faith_n let_v we_o suppose_v since_o our_o adversary_n will_v have_v we_o that_o that_o principle_n of_o absolute_a obedience_n to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n have_v have_v place_n from_o the_o birth_n of_o christianity_n will_v it_o have_v hinder_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o valentinian_o of_o the_o gnostic_n of_o the_o marcionite_n of_o the_o montanist_n and_o the_o manichee_n will_v it_o have_v hinder_v the_o arrian_n the_o samosatence_n the_o eutychian_o the_o nestorian_n and_o so_o many_o other_o that_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n trouble_v the_o state_n of_o religion_n to_o say_v that_o those_o man_n be_v presumptuous_a and_o rash_a be_v but_o to_o say_v what_o we_o will_v have_v which_o be_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o humane_a mean_n that_o can_v stop_v that_o rashness_n and_o presumptuousness_n of_o man_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o folly_n to_o go_v about_o to_o do_v it_o they_o may_v by_o the_o force_n of_o torment_n and_o prison_n by_o their_o threat_n or_o their_o promise_n hinder_v the_o external_a effect_n but_o that_o be_v not_o to_o contain_v man_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v to_o contain_v they_o in_o that_o of_o hypocrisy_n and_o of_o treachery_n a_o second_o inconvenience_n be_v that_o they_o can_v give_v to_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o pastor_n that_o respect_n which_o be_v due_a to_o they_o for_o where_o they_o shall_v be_v set_v up_o to_o be_v judge_n of_o controversy_n private_a man_n will_v rise_v up_o against_o they_o and_o those_o private_a man_n will_v on_o the_o contrary_n become_v their_o judge_n but_o that_o inconvenience_n be_v not_o so_o great_a as_o that_o it_o shall_v make_v we_o hazard_v our_o own_o salvation_n how_o many_o judge_n have_v in_o we_o our_o civil_a society_n to_o who_o we_o yet_o give_v that_o respect_n that_o be_v due_a to_o they_o though_o still_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v that_o all_o that_o they_o have_v judge_v be_v well_o judge_v the_o respect_n which_o man_n owe_v to_o their_o pastor_n be_v not_o unlimited_a it_o have_v its_o bound_n and_o its_o measure_n while_o they_o act_v as_o true_a pastor_n in_o teach_v the_o pure_a truth_n and_o acquit_v themselves_o of_o their_o duty_n they_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v hear_v to_o be_v follow_v to_o be_v respect_v but_o when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v deceiver_n if_o that_o in_o stead_n of_o teach_v the_o truth_n they_o oppose_v it_o if_o they_o mix_v with_o gold_n and_o silver_n wood_n hay_o and_o stubble_n to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o deserve_v in_o that_o regard_n neither_o the_o hear_v nor_o respect_n for_o they_o be_v neither_o pastor_n nor_o the_o church_n but_o only_o as_o they_o teach_v the_o truth_n and_o follow_v righteousness_n and_o when_o they_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o it_o give_v we_o their_o own_o fancy_n or_o when_o they_o follow_v their_o passion_n than_o they_o be_v but_o private_a man_n who_o belie_v their_o character_n and_o they_o can_v owe_v they_o nothing_o for_o those_o kind_n of_o thing_n but_o repulse_n and_o contempt_n or_o at_o the_o most_o but_o indulgence_n if_o the_o evil_n be_v yet_o tolerable_a that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o their_o word_n and_o their_o conduct_n do_v not_o destroy_v the_o gospel_n or_o hinder_v a_o save_a
none_o be_v ignorant_a how_o they_o have_v mingle_v some_o false_a piece_n into_o the_o true_a work_n of_o the_o father_n as_o in_o those_o of_o justin_n martyr_n of_o origen_n of_o saint_n cyprian_n of_o saint_n athanasius_n of_o saint_n hilary_n of_o saint_n ambrose_n of_o saint_n chrysostome_n of_o saint_n jerome_n of_o saint_n augustin_n and_o almost_o general_o of_o all_o the_o father_n who_o name_n they_o have_v make_v use_n of_o to_o authorise_v their_o forgery_n none_o be_v ignorant_a what_o alteration_n they_o have_v make_v in_o the_o true_a write_n of_o the_o father_n whether_o by_o change_v their_o word_n or_o add_v to_o they_o or_o sometime_o in_o cut_v off_o considerable_a clause_n and_o whole_a passage_n entire_a who_o see_v not_o that_o these_o ill_a practice_n which_o of_o themselves_o be_v so_o odious_a in_o all_o sort_n of_o matter_n and_o especial_o in_o those_o of_o religion_n can_v not_o but_o increase_v the_o just_a suspicion_n that_o our_o father_n have_v of_o all_o that_o which_o they_o name_v tradition_n 14._o we_o may_v make_v the_o same_o judgement_n of_o that_o visible_a abuse_n about_o relic_n which_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n for_o on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o devotion_n of_o the_o people_n be_v so_o hot_a as_o to_o that_o point_n that_o it_o can_v not_o keep_v itself_o within_o any_o measure_n and_o on_o the_o other_o the_o cheat_n about_o they_o be_v so_o multiply_v that_o even_o those_o of_o the_o weak_a understanding_n can_v not_o behold_v they_o without_o be_v ashamed_a of_o they_o that_o prodigious_a quantity_n of_o the_o wood_n of_o the_o true_a cross_n which_o be_v scatter_v over_o the_o world_n witness_n this_o as_o likewise_o the_o slipper_n and_o hose_n of_o saint_n joseph_n the_o shift_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n her_o coif_n her_o fillet_n her_o girdle_n her_o two_o comb_n her_o clothes_n her_o wedding-ring_n the_o sword_n wherewith_o saint_n michael_n fight_v with_o the_o devil_n the_o twelve_o comb_n of_o the_o apostle_n some_o of_o the_o stone_n wherewith_o saint_n steven_n be_v stone_v the_o skin_n of_o saint_n bartholomew_n the_o coal_n that_o broil_a saint_n laurence_n aaron_n rod_n the_o bone_n of_o abraham_n of_o isaac_n and_o jacob_n and_o beyond_o all_o that_o the_o multiplication_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o relic_n which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o divers_a place_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o ordinary_a then_o for_o one_o to_o see_v two_o three_o or_o four_o body_n of_o the_o same_o saint_n as_o of_o saint_n gervase_n saint_n protais_fw-fr saint_n sebastian_n of_o saint_n pretonilla_n saint_n anthony_n and_o some_o other_o all_o which_o be_v very_o much_o recommend_v to_o the_o people_n as_o the_o true_a object_n of_o their_o devotion_n not_o only_o without_o any_o certain_a ground_n but_o very_o often_o with_o all_o the_o appearance_n of_o falseness_n can_v not_o but_o create_v a_o vast_a prejudice_n of_o corruption_n in_o that_o church_n and_o religion_n 15._o moreover_o when_o our_o father_n cast_v their_o eye_n upon_o the_o four_o chief_a mean_n that_o god_n have_v establish_v in_o his_o church_n for_o the_o preserve_n of_o true_a faith_n and_o piety_n in_o it_o which_o be_v the_o scripture_n the_o public_a worship_n preach_v and_o the_o sacrament_n and_o when_o they_o consider_v after_o what_o manner_n they_o be_v alter_v and_o the_o use_n of_o all_o those_o mean_n almost_o bring_v to_o nothing_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a they_o can_v do_v otherwise_o than_o conclude_v that_o corruption_n whereof_o we_o dispute_v for_o as_o to_o the_o scripture_n instead_o of_o make_v that_o the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n they_o have_v join_v tradition_n with_o they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o most_o uncertain_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n the_o most_o subject_a to_o imposture_n and_o the_o most_o mix_v with_o humane_a invention_n and_o weakness_n instead_o of_o recommend_v the_o read_n of_o that_o divine_a word_n to_o the_o faithful_a for_o their_o instruction_n and_o their_o comfort_n it_o can_v scarce_o be_v find_v even_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o some_o churchman_n and_o as_o for_o the_o school_n they_o know_v far_o better_a how_o to_o quote_v aristotle_n the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n albertus_n magnus_n saint_n thomas_n and_o saint_n bonaventure_n than_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n as_o for_o the_o public_a service_n they_o perform_v it_o some_o age_n ago_o in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n unknown_a to_o the_o people_n who_o by_o this_o mean_n be_v deprive_v of_o that_o benefit_n which_o they_o may_v just_o expect_v so_o that_o the_o assembly_n be_v become_v in_o that_o respect_n spring_v stop_v up_o for_o any_o public_a edification_n and_o their_o little_a prayer_n themselves_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o creed_n be_v then_o read_v almost_o only_o in_o latin_a and_o the_o woman_n and_o child_n and_o people_n seem_v to_o know_v god_n only_o by_o the_o idea_n that_o be_v give_v they_o of_o that_o tongue_n in_o which_o notwithstanding_o they_o understand_v nothing_o as_o for_o preach_v beside_o that_o the_o pulpit_n in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o that_o time_n be_v abandon_v we_o have_v yet_o some_o book_n of_o the_o sermon_n which_o they_o make_v in_o those_o day_n as_o of_o jacobus_n de_fw-fr voragine_fw-la of_o a_o menot_n a_o maillard_n a_o barelette_n a_o discipulus_fw-la de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la which_o do_v no_o very_a great_a honour_n to_o their_o age._n they_o treat_v there_o far_o often_o of_o the_o legend_n of_o the_o saint_n than_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n and_o that_o which_o be_v yet_o more_o deplorable_a instead_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o preach_v almost_o nothing_o else_o but_o scandalous_o extravagant_a opinion_n raw_a parallel_n of_o a_o saint_n with_o jesus_n christ_n ridiculous_a story_n pleasant_a buffoonery_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n which_o to_o speak_v moderate_o be_v exceed_o remote_a from_o the_o natural_a design_n of_o the_o pulpit_n and_o render_v it_o not_o only_o despise_v but_o after_o a_o sort_n odious_a for_o that_o which_o respect_v the_o sacrament_n not_o to_o touch_v on_o those_o multitude_n of_o unprofitable_a ceremony_n wherewith_o they_o have_v load_v they_o we_o must_v confess_v that_o that_o opinion_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o be_v so_o general_o teach_v in_o the_o school_n and_o which_o eugenius_n the_o four_o have_v define_v in_o his_o instruction_n to_o the_o armenian_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n it_o destroy_v almost_o all_o the_o benefit_n of_o those_o sacred_a mystery_n and_o cast_v man_n conscience_n into_o perpetual_a scruple_n and_o uncertainty_n for_o unless_o they_o can_v establish_v a_o revelation_n for_o every_o particular_a christian_a what_o assurance_n can_v we_o have_v that_o he_o who_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n to_o we_o have_v a_o intention_n to_o do_v that_o which_o the_o church_n enjoin_v he_o to_o do_v or_o that_o he_o have_v not_o a_o intention_n contrary_a to_o that_o of_o the_o church_n what_o assurance_n can_v be_v give_v that_o in_o all_o that_o long_a train_n of_o priest_n bishop_n and_o pope_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o have_v be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n down_o to_o this_o present_a time_n there_o have_v not_o be_v any_o in_o who_o that_o intention_n which_o they_o make_v so_o necessary_a to_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n have_v be_v defective_a yet_o if_o one_o only_a priest_n that_o shall_v happen_v to_o baptise_v a_o pope_n have_v not_o have_v a_o intention_n to_o baptise_v he_o or_o if_o he_o himself_o be_v not_o true_o a_o priest_n by_o the_o default_n of_o the_o intention_n of_o he_o who_o give_v he_o order_n or_o he_o who_o baptise_a he_o if_o one_o only_a bishop_n who_o confer_v order_n on_o a_o pope_n then_o when_o he_o be_v make_v priest_n have_v not_o a_o intention_n to_o do_v what_o the_o church_n pretend_v to_o do_v all_o that_o which_o will_v come_v in_o consequence_n of_o that_o default_n will_v be_v spoil_v the_o bishop_n that_o that_o pope_n afterward_o shall_v promote_v will_v not_o be_v lawful_a bishop_n the_o priest_n on_o who_o those_o bishop_n have_v confer_v order_n will_v be_v no_o lawful_a priest_n and_o the_o sacrament_n that_o those_o priest_n shall_v administer_v will_v not_o be_v lawful_o administer_v what_o can_v our_o father_n think_v of_o such_o a_o dreadful_a confusion_n which_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o undo_v unless_o by_o suppose_v a_o perpetual_a miracle_n which_o be_v that_o god_n shall_v have_v so_o overrule_v the_o intention_n of_o all_o those_o man_n that_o howsoever_o wicked_a athestical_a hypocritical_a or_o profane_a they_o shall_v have_v be_v yet_o that_o not_o one_o of_o they_o nevertheless_o shall_v fail_v in_o have_v a_o intention_n to_o do_v that_o which_o the_o church_n enjoin_v but_o what_o assurance_n have_v we_o
word_n mention_v either_o there_o or_o any_o where_o else_o and_o as_o to_o that_o passage_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n etc._n etc._n whether_o they_o understand_v 16._o it_o of_o that_o confession_n which_o saint_n peter_n have_v make_v or_o whether_o they_o refer_v it_o to_o his_o person_n i_o say_v that_o no_o one_o can_v understand_v it_o of_o his_o successor_n since_o there_o be_v not_o any_o mention_n make_v of_o they_o either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o for_o when_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v not_o when_o it_o have_v never_o yet_o be_v the_o church_n do_v not_o fail_v of_o be_v build_v upon_o that_o confession_n of_o saint_n peter_n comprehend_v jesus_n christ_n upon_o who_o the_o church_n be_v every_o way_n build_v but_o also_o because_o that_o confession_n of_o saint_n peter_n or_o saint_n peter_n confess_v be_v as_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a stone_n in_o that_o mystical_a building_n which_o be_v not_o leave_v alone_o for_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v not_o only_o the_o foundation_n but_o the_o sovereign_a architect_n have_v add_v many_o other_o in_o all_o age_n and_o will_v always_o join_v other_o to_o they_o till_o the_o building_n be_v entire_o finish_v that_o be_v to_o say_v till_o god_n fulfil_v the_o decree_n of_o his_o election_n but_o to_o go_v on_o with_o our_o discourse_n of_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o true_a church_n i_o affirm_v in_o the_o three_o place_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o know_v very_o well_o what_o a_o true_a church_n visible_a be_v for_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o imagine_v that_o all_o those_o person_n who_o compose_v that_o visible_a society_n shall_v be_v that_o true_a church_n none_o but_o those_o true_a believer_n i_o will_v say_v those_o who_o join_v to_o their_o external_a profession_n of_o christianty_n a_o true_a and_o sincere_a piety_n be_v real_o the_o church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o as_o for_o the_o other_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o worldly_a profane_a and_o hypocritical_a they_o be_v but_o the_o church_n in_o appearance_n only_o and_o not_o indeed_o for_o have_v no_o inward_a call_v which_o consist_v in_o faith_n and_o love_n they_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o our_o saviour_n nor_o be_v they_o of_o his_o communion_n notwithstanding_o they_o do_v not_o fail_v to_o be_v mix_v with_o the_o faithful_a by_o reason_n of_o that_o external_a profession_n as_o if_o they_o real_o be_v in_o the_o same_o religious_a society_n with_o they_o what_o then_o be_v the_o visibility_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o to_o we_o it_o be_v not_o that_o we_o can_v distinct_o and_o with_o any_o certainty_n affirm_v behold_v these_o be_v the_o true_o faithful_a of_o jesus_n christ_n none_o but_o but_o god_n alone_o can_v know_v they_o after_o that_o distinct_a manner_n and_o and_o without_o a_o possibility_n of_o be_v deceive_v but_o this_o we_o may_v say_v of_o that_o visible_a society_n that_o under_o that_o ministry_n and_o in_o that_o communion_n god_n preserve_v and_o raise_v the_o true_o faithful_a whence_o we_o may_v from_o this_o judgement_n with_o solidity_n and_o truth_n and_o i_o may_v say_v also_o without_o a_o possibility_n of_o be_v deceive_v that_o there_o be_v a_o true_a visible_a church_n in_o that_o sense_n i_o declare_v that_o there_o have_v always_o be_v some_o way_n or_o other_o a_o true_a church_n visible_a upon_o earth_n not_o but_o that_o god_n can_v make_v it_o whole_o disappear_v to_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n whensoever_o it_o shall_v please_v he_o to_o do_v so_o without_o do_v man_n any_o wrong_n or_o any_o breach_n of_o his_o promise_n since_o he_o have_v without_o doubt_n extraordinary_a way_n to_o beget_v faith_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o child_n and_o to_o keep_v they_o on_o in_o that_o course_n and_o to_o lead_v they_o in_o the_o end_n unto_o salvation_n without_o make_v use_n either_o of_o the_o public_a assembly_n or_o ministry_n but_o only_o because_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o ever_o happen_v since_o the_o first_o rise_v of_o christianity_n a_o eclipse_n so_o full_a and_o entire_a that_o one_o can_v not_o some_o way_n say_v there_o be_v a_o society_n in_o which_o god_n do_v keep_v the_o true_o faithful_a i_o say_v after_o some_o way_n for_o as_o that_o judgement_n depend_v on_o two_o thing_n the_o one_o to_o be_v able_a to_o know_v a_o society_n and_o a_o ministry_n and_o the_o other_o to_o know_v that_o under_o that_o ministry_n and_o in_o that_o society_n a_o man_n may_v work_v out_o his_o own_o salvation_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o first_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o distinguish_v between_o two_o season_n the_o one_o of_o liberty_n and_o prosperity_n where_o the_o church_n have_v its_o assembly_n and_o exercise_n its_o ministry_n open_o in_o the_o face_n of_o all_o the_o world_n for_o then_o she_o be_v much_o more_o visible_a than_o she_o will_v be_v otherwise_o that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v far_o more_o easy_a to_o be_v know_v what_o society_n and_o what_o ministry_n that_o be_v such_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n under_o constantine_n and_o other_o christian_a emperor_n and_o it_o be_v in_o such_o time_n as_o those_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o its_o outward_a splendour_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o in_o scripture_n be_v accomplish_v the_o other_o season_n be_v that_o of_o its_o affliction_n and_o persecution_n such_o be_v that_o of_o the_o first_o century_n of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o pagan_a emperor_n and_o the_o enemy_n of_o christianity_n for_o none_o can_v deny_v that_o then_o the_o church_n be_v less_o discernible_a by_o its_o assembly_n not_o only_o because_o they_o be_v more_o private_a and_o less_o expose_v to_o the_o public_a view_n but_o also_o yet_o further_o because_o the_o name_n of_o christian_a have_v be_v defame_v by_o a_o thousand_o calumny_n and_o charge_v with_o a_o thousand_o false_a imputation_n which_o make_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v far_o more_o difficult_a and_o it_o will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o say_v that_o then_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a and_o illustrious_a by_o the_o blood_n of_o its_o martyr_n for_o the_o blood_n of_o its_o martyr_n do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o hinder_v the_o accuse_v of_o the_o christian_n of_o most_o odious_a crime_n that_o which_o hinder_v its_o be_v liable_a to_o be_v easy_o know_v those_o accusation_n be_v as_o a_o cloud_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o common_a people_n which_o be_v necessary_o to_o be_v discipate_v before_o they_o can_v come_v to_o know_v what_o christianity_n be_v so_o that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v more_o or_o less_o visible_a according_a to_o the_o difference_n of_o its_o season_n as_o to_o the_o second_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o know_v that_o one_o may_v be_v save_v in_o that_o society_n and_o under_o that_o ministry_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o distinguish_v of_o the_o two_o state_n or_o condition_n wherein_o that_o society_n may_v be_v find_v the_o one_o be_v a_o more_o pure_a state_n then_o when_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v preach_v without_o mixture_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o man_n when_o the_o public_a worship_n be_v perform_v without_o superstition_n and_o the_o sacrament_n plain_o administer_v according_a to_o their_o primitive_a institution_n and_o when_o general_o religion_n be_v establish_v teach_v and_o observe_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n wherein_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n leave_v it_o to_o the_o world_n in_o that_o condition_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o true_a church_n in_o very_o visible_a and_o very_o discernible_a for_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o behold_v all_o the_o character_n of_o its_o truth_n which_o only_o consist_v in_o its_o conformity_n to_o that_o lively_a primitive_a and_o natural_a image_n of_o christianity_n which_o god_n have_v leave_v we_o in_o his_o holy_a scripture_n but_o it_o be_v not_o less_o certain_a that_o a_o church_n may_v fall_v into_o a_o quite_o contrary_a condition_n that_o be_v to_o say_v into_o a_o state_n of_o corruption_n then_o when_o it_o add_v to_o divine_a truth_n strange_a and_o adulterate_a doctrine_n when_o it_o mingle_v superstition_n with_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o when_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o just_a government_n it_o exercise_v a_o insolent_a and_o absolute_a dominion_n over_o man_n conscience_n in_o one_o word_n then_o when_o all_o thing_n appear_v so_o confuse_v and_o in_o that_o disorder_n that_o one_o can_v scarce_o any_o more_o see_v any_o trace_n of_o that_o beautiful_a and_o glorious_a image_n of_o christianity_n which_o i_o have_v before_o speak_v of_o to_o shine_v forth_o in_o that_o condition_n i_o affirm_v that_o true_a church_n be_v very_o hard_a to_o be_v know_v for_o howsoever_o it_o be_v most_o visible_a in_o quality_n of_o a_o church_n because_o its_o assembly_n may_v be_v
prejudices_fw-la be_v will_v they_o say_v to_o defend_v themselves_o that_o their_o be_v a_o very_a great_a difference_n between_o the_o jewish_a visible_a church_n and_o the_o christian_a that_o this_o have_v its_o right_n privilege_n and_o promise_n which_o the_o other_o have_v not_o for_o she_o have_v a_o sovereign_a authority_n over_o the_o faith_n of_o her_o child_n a_o privilege_n that_o she_o can_v never_o err_v and_o promise_n of_o a_o perpetual_a visibility_n but_o to_o come_v to_o that_o they_o ought_v first_o to_o renounce_v all_o those_o general_a proof_n upon_o which_o they_o find_v that_o absolute_a obedience_n to_o the_o latin_a church_n they_o need_v say_v no_o more_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v do_v that_o the_o darkness_n of_o our_o mind_n our_o personal_a prejudices_fw-la the_o uncertainty_n wherein_o we_o be_v of_o be_v deceive_v in_o our_o judgement_n the_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o a_o thousand_o care_n and_o a_o thousand_o temporal_a necessity_n which_o almost_o preface_n whole_o take_v we_o up_o and_o which_o will_v not_o allow_v we_o to_o give_v more_o than_o a_o very_a little_a time_n to_o the_o examine_v the_o truth_n of_o religion_n the_o want_n of_o necessary_a help_n the_o ignorance_n narrow_a and_o limit_a understanding_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n constrain_v we_o to_o refer_v ourselves_o to_o the_o church_n all_o that_o will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n if_o they_o restrain_v it_o to_o a_o privilege_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n for_o these_o very_a same_o general_a reason_n have_v place_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n man_n see_v not_o then_o more_o clear_o than_o they_o do_v in_o these_o day_n they_o be_v not_o more_o assure_v in_o their_o judgement_n they_o be_v not_o less_o cumber_v with_o worldly_a affair_n they_o be_v not_o less_o unprovided_a of_o necessary_a help_n for_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n they_o be_v not_o then_o less_o ignorant_a and_o their_o mind_n less_o narrow_a than_o man_n be_v now_o in_o these_o day_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o do_v not_o make_v it_o their_o duty_n blind_o to_o follow_v their_o pastor_n or_o ordinary_a guide_n these_o be_v then_o nothing_o but_o shadow_n and_o frivolous_a pretence_n which_o have_v be_v of_o no_o force_n then_o can_v have_v any_o weight_n now_o we_o need_v not_o further_o say_v as_o the_o author_n of_o prejudices_fw-la have_v do_v preface_n that_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o god_n can_v save_v man_n and_o even_o the_o most_o ignorant_a and_o simple_a that_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o offer_v they_o any_o other_o way_n to_o salvation_n then_o that_o of_o the_o true_a religion_n that_o it_o be_v therefore_o necessary_a that_o that_o shall_v be_v not_o only_o possible_a but_o easy_a to_o be_v know_v that_o yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n more_o difficult_a more_o dangerous_a and_o less_o fit_v to_o all_o capacity_n then_o that_o of_o examine_v all_o its_o tenet_n one_o may_v equal_o apply_v all_o those_o proposition_n to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o well_o as_o to_o those_o of_o the_o new_a god_n can_v save_v man_n there_o he_o make_v no_o other_o way_n to_o salvation_n then_o that_o of_o the_o true_a religion_n that_o aught_o then_o to_o have_v be_v easy_o know_v and_o that_o way_n of_o examination_n be_v not_o less_o dangerous_a nor_o more_o fit_v to_o all_o sort_n of_o capacity_n than_o it_o be_v now_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o have_v not_o any_o force_n to_o hinder_v the_o faithful_a from_o examine_v it_o they_o can_v then_o in_o these_o day_n draw_v any_o consequence_n from_o what_o they_o so_o propose_v i_o affirm_v the_o same_o thing_n of_o all_o those_o other_o inconvenience_n which_o they_o invent_v to_o take_v away_o from_o every_o one_o that_o right_n of_o examine_v the_o state_n of_o religion_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o whole_o to_o believe_v their_o pastor_n as_o that_o it_o will_v be_v to_o introduce_v a_o principle_n of_o schism_n and_o division_n that_o every_o one_o may_v make_v himself_o a_o judge_n of_o the_o church_n that_o every_o one_o may_v make_v a_o religion_n according_a to_o his_o fancy_n that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a rashness_n for_o private_a person_n to_o imagine_v that_o they_o have_v more_o understanding_n and_o more_o wisdom_n than_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o other_o such_o like_a thing_n they_o may_v see_v that_o all_o those_o arguing_n be_v bring_v in_o vain_o and_o to_o no_o purpose_n for_o if_o they_o be_v good_a and_o solid_a be_v so_o general_a as_o they_o be_v they_o will_v serve_v for_o all_o time_n and_o all_o place_n and_o will_v have_v their_o force_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n as_o well_o as_o they_o will_v have_v they_o conclude_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o latin_n in_o the_o second_o place_n those_o right_n privilege_n and_o promise_n which_o they_o will_v ascribe_v to_o the_o christian_a visible_a church_n in_o exclusion_n of_o the_o jewish_a be_v evident_o null_a if_o they_o will_v make_v they_o depend_v precise_o on_o christianity_n for_o as_o i_o have_v before_o note_v the_o greek_a church_n the_o armenian_a the_o nestorian_a and_o aethiopian_a may_v pretend_v to_o they_o as_o just_o as_o the_o latin_a and_o yet_o the_o latin_a apply_v they_o to_o herself_o in_o particular_a to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o all_o the_o other_o they_o ought_v then_o either_o to_o show_v we_o what_o reason_n she_o have_v to_o appropriate_v those_o right_n privilege_n and_o general_a promise_n and_o to_o make_v that_o that_o regard_v the_o body_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n become_v particular_a to_o she_o or_o it_o be_v necessary_a they_o show_v we_o that_o indeed_o they_o be_v not_o those_o right_n privilege_n and_o promise_n that_o be_v common_a to_o all_o christian_a society_n and_o that_o they_o be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o latin_a church_n but_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o do_v either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o for_o neither_o nature_n nor_o grace_n have_v give_v any_o of_o those_o privilege_n or_o right_n to_o the_o latin_n in_o exclusion_n from_o all_o other_o christian_n they_o be_v neither_o more_o lord_n of_o our_o conscience_n nor_o more_o infallible_a than_o other_o christianity_n be_v uniform_a throughout_o the_o scripture_n also_o do_v not_o contain_v any_o one_o particular_a promise_n for_o they_o on_o the_o contrary_a saint_n paul_n say_v that_o in_o jesus_n christ_n there_o be_v neither_o jew_n nor_o greek_a nor_o barbarian_a nor_o scythian_a nor_o bond_n nor_o free_a but_o christ_n be_v all_o and_o in_o all_o so_o that_o the_o latin_a church_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o draw_v that_o to_o herself_o which_o be_v a_o common_a right_n nor_o to_o pretend_v any_o peculiar_a privilege_n but_o in_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o we_o have_v make_v it_o appear_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n that_o those_o pretend_a privilege_n of_o infallibility_n which_o they_o ascribe_v to_o the_o christian_a church_n visible_a and_o those_o promise_n of_o perpetual_a visibility_n in_o that_o sense_n of_o visibility_n wherein_o they_o understand_v it_o be_v chimera_n which_o have_v not_o any_o foundation_n either_o in_o scripture_n or_o reason_n and_o as_o to_o that_o right_n of_o soveraign-authority_n it_o can_v here_o be_v allege_v but_o to_o very_o ill_a purpose_n for_o it_o be_v that_o which_o be_v yet_o in_o dispute_n and_o whereof_o we_o have_v show_v the_o falsity_n from_o the_o example_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n but_o they_o may_v draw_v from_o that_o example_n a_o consequence_n against_o the_o latin_a one_o because_o that_o if_o that_o pretence_n will_v have_v be_v heretofore_o pernicious_a and_o destructive_a to_o religion_n and_o the_o true_a church_n as_o they_o may_v see_v it_o will_v have_v be_v it_o follow_v that_o it_o will_v be_v so_o yet_o in_o these_o day_n if_o then_o they_o can_v set_v before_o we_o any_o other_o difference_n between_o those_o two_o term_n and_o those_o two_o church_n which_o hinder_v my_o conclusion_n the_o argument_n will_v hold_v entire_a for_o it_o will_v not_o be_v enough_o to_o overthrow_v it_o mere_o to_o say_v that_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v that_o authority_n and_o that_o the_o jewish_a have_v it_o not_o but_o they_o ought_v to_o give_v we_o a_o reason_n for_o it_o 3._o but_o to_o proceed_v with_o our_o reflection_n if_o that_o maxim_n whereof_o we_o treat_v be_v true_a that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o give_v to_o their_o ordinary_a pastor_n a_o blind_a obedience_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n to_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n to_o tread_v in_o their_o step_n and_o to_o divest_v themselves_o of_o their_o own_o conduct_n to_o rest_v upon_o they_o the_o jew_n who_o reject_v jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o doctrine_n during_o the_o time_n of_o his_o preach_v
glory_n and_o the_o covenant_n and_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o who_o be_v the_o father_n and_o who_o have_v the_o oracle_n of_o god_n commit_v unto_o they_o and_o in_o who_o bosom_n christ_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v bear_v if_o that_o maxim_n of_o the_o author_n of_o prejudices_fw-la be_v good_a it_o must_v necessary_o have_v be_v good_a for_o that_o church_n which_o have_v condemn_v jesus_n christ_n his_o person_n his_o call_n his_o miracle_n his_o doctrine_n and_o what_o right_o then_o have_v his_o disciple_n to_o hear_v and_o follow_v he_o we_o have_v see_v they_o from_o reason_n and_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o very_a considerable_a person_n of_o our_o age_n and_o to_o who_o one_o of_o the_o great_a king_n have_v give_v the_o honour_n of_o commit_v the_o concern_v of_o his_o conscience_n to_o he_o that_o if_o that_o maxim_n have_v place_n that_o we_o ought_v entire_o to_o refer_v ourselves_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n we_o can_v not_o any_o more_o regard_v those_o miracle_n when_o they_o be_v opposite_a to_o that_o authority_n let_v they_o tell_v we_o then_o what_o right_n the_o disciple_n have_v to_o follow_v jesus_n christ_n by_o what_o right_a do_v the_o first_o convert_v and_o those_o who_o be_v afterward_o convert_v by_o other_o embrace_z the_o gospel_n and_o if_o they_o do_v it_o without_o any_o right_n and_o against_o their_o duty_n into_o what_o labyrinth_n we_o cast_v you_o what_o will_v become_v of_o the_o christian_a church_n what_o will_v become_v of_o you_o yourselves_o you_o form_n prejudices_fw-la against_o we_o draw_v from_o the_o fault_n that_o have_v say_v you_o appear_v in_o the_o person_n of_o our_o first_o reformer_n you_o tell_v we_o of_o a_o pretend_a precipitancy_n by_o which_o the_o magistrate_n of_o zurich_n reform_v themselves_o you_o conclude_v from_o thence_o without_o enter_v upon_o the_o point_n in_o dispute_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o renounce_v the_o reformation_n of_o our_o father_n answer_v then_o yourselves_o to_o the_o prejudices_fw-la that_o according_a to_o your_o maxim_n the_o jew_n may_v form_v against_o the_o first_o disciple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o the_o consequence_n that_o they_o may_v draw_v from_o thence_o that_o without_o enter_v any_o further_o into_o a_o discuss_n of_o the_o point_n of_o that_o religion_n without_o examine_v either_o the_o miracle_n or_o the_o ancient_a prophecy_n or_o the_o success_n of_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n or_o all_o the_o other_o thing_n that_o we_o can_v allege_v in_o our_o favour_n we_o ought_v to_o renounce_v our_o christianity_n you_o yourselves_o authorize_v their_o principle_n by_o one_o that_o be_v altogether_o like_o it_o which_o you_o lay_v down_o and_o which_o you_o know_v not_o how_o to_o make_v use_n of_o against_o they_o without_o overthrow_v yourselves_o in_o a_o word_n you_o draw_v the_o same_o consequence_n from_o it_o with_o they_o show_v we_o then_o by_o what_o secret_a art_n both_o you_o and_o we_o may_v get_v out_o of_o that_o abyss_n whereinto_o you_o have_v plunge_v we_o if_o your_o father_n say_v you_o have_v reform_v themselves_o with_o a_o ill_a design_n you_o ought_v without_o far_a examination_n to_o renounce_v their_o reformation_n if_o the_o chief_a author_n of_o your_o religion_n a_o jew_n will_v say_v have_v adhere_v to_o jesus_n with_o a_o ill_a design_n against_o the_o obligation_n which_o they_o have_v to_o cleave_v to_o the_o church_n you_o ought_v to_o renounce_v their_o christianity_n answer_v if_o you_o can_v to_o those_o argument_n and_o set_v our_o conscience_n in_o quiet_a as_o for_o we_o indeed_o we_o be_v not_o in_o pain_n for_o we_o know_v that_o that_o principle_n which_o you_o urge_v to_o those_o unbeliever_n be_v false_a there_o be_v not_o any_o person_n who_o have_v not_o right_a to_o examine_v the_o point_n of_o that_o religion_n and_o to_o discern_v by_o himself_o the_o true_a from_o the_o false_a the_o good_a from_o the_o bad_a that_o which_o be_v from_o god_n from_o that_o which_o which_o from_o man_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n never_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o hinder_v we_o with_o any_o justice_n from_o it_o and_o so_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o reproach_v the_o first_o christian_n 9_o but_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o give_v over_o these_o reflection_n without_o make_v one_o upon_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sirmium_n of_o milan_n and_o of_o ariminum_n whereof_o i_o have_v speak_v before_o there_o be_v no_o person_n who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o arrian_n be_v then_o master_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n which_o they_o call_v the_o catholic_n church_n treat_v the_o orthodox_n as_o heretic_n and_o disturber_n of_o its_o peace_n depose_v they_o and_o send_v they_o into_o banishment_n the_o poison_n of_o the_o arrian_n say_v vincentius_n lirinensis_n have_v not_o only_o infect_v one_o part_n but_o almost_o all_o the_o world_n and_o almost_o all_o 6._o the_o latin_a bishop_n some_o by_o force_n other_o by_o simplicity_n give_v themselves_o over_o to_o be_v deceive_v find_v themselves_o engage_v in_o the_o darkness_n of_o error_n we_o be_v in_o that_o condition_n say_v phaebadius_n that_o if_o we_o will_v be_v call_v catholic_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o embrace_v heresy_n and_o yet_o enitio_fw-la nevertheless_o if_o we_o do_v not_o reject_v heresy_n we_o can_v be_v true_o catholic_n god_n do_v yet_o keep_v to_o himself_o notwithstanding_o some_o bishop_n few_o in_o number_n but_o great_a in_o courage_n and_o that_o small_a remnant_n in_o the_o end_n serve_v for_o a_o spark_n to_o rekindle_v the_o fire_n of_o the_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n apply_v then_o to_o they_o that_o maxim_n which_o we_o have_v before_o oppose_v and_o weigh_v those_o consequence_n that_o may_v be_v draw_v from_o it_o against_o those_o and_o against_o the_o faithful_a who_o hear_v they_o and_o read_v their_o write_n the_o least_o be_v that_o they_o be_v schismatic_n and_o corruptor_n of_o the_o people_n who_o after_o have_v themselves_o break_v off_o that_o obedience_n which_o they_o owe_v to_o the_o church_n solicit_v other_o to_o do_v the_o like_a they_o may_v have_v very_o well_o urge_v that_o they_o have_v the_o scripture_n on_o their_o side_n that_o they_o have_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a for_o they_o but_o they_o will_v have_v answer_v they_o that_o it_o be_v no_o long_a time_n to_o dispute_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o and_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n since_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o strip_v themselves_o of_o their_o own_o conduct_n to_o rest_v upon_o that_o of_o the_o church_n nevertheless_o they_o do_v not_o fail_v generous_o to_o maintain_v the_o truth_n to_o dispute_v and_o write_v for_o it_o to_o address_v themselves_o not_o only_o to_o the_o bishop_n but_o to_o the_o people_n and_o to_o defend_v it_o against_o that_o specious_a name_n of_o a_o church_n which_o they_o set_v before_o they_o and_o the_o word_n of_o saint_n hilary_n upon_o this_o subject_n be_v worthy_a of_o a_o particular_a consideration_n the_o church_n say_v arrianos_fw-la he_o terrify_a man_n by_o banishment_n and_o by_o prison_n and_o constrain_v they_o to_o believe_v what_o she_o tell_v they_o she_o that_o herself_o have_v never_o be_v believe_v but_o by_o the_o exile_n and_o prison_n which_o she_o suffer_v she_o which_o have_v be_v only_o consecrate_a by_o the_o persecution_n of_o man_n be_v &_o a_o dignatione_n communicantium_fw-la she_o drive_v away_o the_o priest_n forget_v that_o by_o the_o banishment_n of_o her_o priest_n she_o increase_v she_o boast_v that_o she_o be_v belove_v by_o the_o world_n but_o she_o can_v not_o belong_v to_o jesus_n christ_n unless_o the_o world_n hate_v she_o haec_fw-la de_fw-la comparatione_fw-la traditae_fw-la nobis_fw-la olim_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la nunc_fw-la quam_fw-la de_fw-la perditae_fw-la res_fw-la ipsa_fw-la que_fw-la in_o oculis_fw-la omnium_fw-la est_fw-la at_o que_fw-la ore_fw-la clamavit_fw-la can_v any_o one_o be_v rash_a enough_o to_o maintain_v that_o he_o be_v bind_v then_o to_o refer_v himself_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o church_n to_o see_v with_o its_o eye_n to_o tread_v in_o its_o step_n and_o to_o rest_v himself_o upon_o its_o conduct_n will_v any_o say_v that_o that_o handful_n of_o good_a man_n who_o have_v since_o reestablish_v christianity_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o company_n of_o rebel_n and_o of_o presumptuous_a mind_n will_v they_o charge_v their_o write_n and_o their_o letter_n to_o the_o people_n with_o forgery_n and_o subornation_n will_v they_o justify_v their_o be_v depose_v their_o banishment_n the_o persecution_n which_o they_o so_o constant_o suffer_v will_v they_o say_v that_o the_o faithful_a that_o hear_v they_o be_v rash_a and_o
whole_a scripture_n be_v full_a of_o this_o doctrine_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v immediate_o give_v to_o every_o believer_n even_o down_o to_o that_o place_n where_o st._n john_n tell_v they_o that_o they_o have_v a_o unction_n from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o that_o they_o know_v all_o thing_n that_o the_o anoint_v which_o 2._o they_o have_v receive_v of_o jesus_n christ_n abode_n in_o they_o and_o that_o they_o need_v not_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v teach_v they_o but_o that_o that_o anoint_v teach_v they_o all_o thing_n from_o whence_o these_o two_o truth_n result_v the_o one_o that_o every_o faithful_a one_o in_o particular_a have_v fellowship_n with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o animate_v and_o govern_v he_o immediate_o and_o the_o other_o that_o that_o spirit_n be_v not_o a_o mere_a spirit_n of_o docility_n and_o rest_v in_o what_o be_v teach_v they_o to_o make_v the_o faithful_a receive_v the_o word_n of_o their_o pastor_n but_o a_o spirit_n of_o discern_v which_o make_v they_o capable_a of_o know_v thing_n by_o themselves_o and_o to_o judge_v of_o they_o for_o this_o be_v that_o st._n paul_n mean_v by_o that_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o of_o revelation_n and_o st._n john_n by_o that_o unction_n which_o teach_v all_o thing_n and_o free_v we_o from_o the_o necessity_n of_o be_v teach_v by_o man_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o depend_v absolute_o on_o their_o authority_n as_o those_o man_n will_v do_v who_o shall_v not_o be_v capable_a of_o discern_v by_o themselves_o and_o there_o be_v this_o thing_n very_o considerable_a in_o that_o discourse_n of_o st._n john_n that_o he_o make_v the_o subject_n of_o it_o those_o false_a teacher_n who_o labour_v to_o seduce_v the_o faithful_a i_o have_v say_v he_o write_v these_o thing_n concern_v those_o who_o seduce_v you_o but_o the_o anoint_v which_o you_o have_v receive_v abide_v in_o you_o and_o you_o have_v no_o need_n that_o any_o man_n shall_v teach_v you_o etc._n etc._n which_o let_v we_o plain_o see_v that_o he_o mean_v that_o that_o unction_n be_v sufficient_a to_o secure_v they_o from_o that_o seduce_v and_o by_o consequence_n to_o make_v they_o discern_v by_o themselves_o the_o true_a from_o the_o false_a as_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n they_o do_v but_o mock_v when_o they_o call_v that_o spirit_n a_o private_a spirit_n under_o a_o pretence_n that_o it_o be_v give_v to_o each_o believer_n for_o it_o be_v the_o same_o spirit_n that_o animate_v the_o whole_a mystical_a body_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o regenerate_v and_o sanctify_v they_o it_o be_v in_o one_o word_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n it_o may_v with_o far_o great_a reason_n be_v say_v that_o they_o introduce_v a_o private_a spirit_n who_o restrain_v to_o the_o pastor_n alone_o the_o right_n of_o discern_v the_o good_a from_o the_o bad_a and_o who_o will_v not_o that_o any_o layman_n shall_v interpose_v for_o if_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v animate_v but_o by_o one_o only_a and_o the_o same_o spirit_n why_o shall_v not_o all_o the_o faithful_a have_v the_o same_o right_n with_o the_o pastor_n since_o they_o all_o partake_v of_o one_o same_o light_n though_o in_o a_o different_a measure_n in_o fine_a if_o they_o will_v have_v it_o that_o to_o yield_v to_o every_o one_o a_o right_a to_o examine_v the_o matter_n of_o religion_n will_v be_v to_o bring_v in_o a_o private_a spirit_n let_v they_o tell_v we_o by_o what_o spirit_n they_o will_v have_v one_o examine_v the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n by_o what_o spirit_n they_o will_v have_v every_o one_o know_v and_o rest_v assure_v that_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o what_o spirit_n they_o will_v have_v the_o faithful_a choose_v that_o side_n where_o they_o shall_v refer_v themselves_o to_o their_o pastor_n for_o in_o all_o those_o point_n they_o can_v deny_v that_o man_n ought_v to_o follow_v their_o own_o light_n since_o they_o can_v in_o the_o least_o make_v those_o judgement_n by_o the_o eye_n of_o their_o prelate_n as_o we_o have_v note_v before_o behold_v then_o that_o private_a spirit_n since_o it_o please_v these_o gentleman_n to_o call_v it_o so_o which_o they_o themselves_o be_v constrain_v to_o admit_v which_o show_v we_o the_o nullity_n of_o that_o inconveence_n that_o they_o will_v pretend_v to_o remedy_n we_o ought_v then_o to_o go_v high_a yet_o and_o to_o examine_v that_o great_a argument_n which_o the_o author_n of_o those_o prejudices_fw-la have_v choose_v above_o all_o other_o as_o be_v alone_o sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o acknowledge_v the_o necessity_n of_o refer_v one_o self_n blind_o to_o the_o church_n it_o consist_v in_o let_v we_o know_v that_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n may_v deceive_v themselves_o preface_n that_o the_o darkness_n of_o our_o understand_n our_o prejudices_fw-la and_o our_o passion_n engage_v we_o to_o that_o and_o if_o m._n claude_n say_v he_o can_v propose_v evident_a falsehood_n as_o proof_n of_o the_o high_a certainty_n who_o can_v assure_v we_o that_o we_o be_v not_o in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o deceive_v themselves_o and_o make_v a_o ill_a choice_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o that_o the_o persuasion_n that_o we_o have_v well_o choose_v be_v not_o any_o effect_n of_o our_o prejudices_fw-la and_o our_o passion_n and_o other_o secret_a obstinacy_n in_o our_o opinion_n from_o whence_o he_o conclude_v that_o it_o must_v be_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v despair_v of_o ever_o to_o be_v able_a to_o distinguish_v the_o true_a religion_n amid_o so_o many_o sect_n who_o all_o lie_v claim_v to_o it_o or_o to_o choose_v among_o so_o many_o opinion_n which_o they_o propose_v as_o authorize_v by_o the_o scripture_n those_o which_o one_o ought_v to_o believe_v from_o those_o that_o one_o ought_v to_o reject_v unless_o that_o same_o impotence_n that_o lie_v upon_o we_o to_o discern_v the_o truth_n by_o our_o own_o light_n and_o which_o will_v not_o open_v a_o way_n to_o find_v it_o shall_v make_v we_o go_v from_o the_o way_n of_o reason_n wherein_o we_o shall_v see_v nothing_o but_o uncertainty_n to_o that_o of_o authority_n which_o will_v draw_v we_o out_o of_o that_o confusion_n and_o in_o the_o end_n he_o advertise_v we_o that_o that_o authority_n be_v that_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o latin_a prelate_n we_o see_v then_o that_o thanks_o to_o the_o philosophy_n of_o this_o author_n all_o must_v be_v good_a pyrrhonist_n to_o become_v good_a catholic_n we_o ought_v to_o doubt_v of_o every_o thing_n if_o we_o will_v be_v assure_v of_o any_o thing_n but_o to_o speak_v what_o appear_v to_o i_o that_o argument_n can_v make_v any_o impression_n on_o the_o mind_n because_o it_o destroy_v itself_o as_o usual_o those_o false_a subtlety_n do_v for_o if_o we_o can_v be_v assure_v in_o those_o judgement_n that_o we_o make_v by_o our_o own_o light_n because_o that_o may_v deceive_v we_o who_o can_v assure_v we_o that_o that_o author_n argument_n will_v be_v good_a and_o conclude_a since_o we_o can_v judge_v of_o it_o but_o by_o that_o same_o light_n which_o will_v not_o give_v according_a to_o he_o any_o certainty_n if_o the_o use_n of_o our_o reason_n produce_v nothing_o but_o doubt_n why_o will_v he_o yet_o give_v we_o a_o reason_n the_o consequence_n whereof_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o doubtful_a and_o by_o which_o he_o can_v also_o gain_v any_o thing_n over_o we_o it_o may_v be_v it_o be_v good_a it_o may_v be_v it_o be_v not_o so_o our_o light_n deceive_v we_o in_o other_o thing_n it_o may_v very_o well_o deceive_v we_o in_o that_o what_o likelihood_n then_o be_v there_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v persuade_v by_o a_o argument_n that_o combat_n itself_o and_o which_o take_v away_o from_o itself_o the_o force_n of_o persuade_v moreover_o that_o argument_n destroy_v the_o design_n of_o the_o author_n of_o those_o prejudices_fw-la and_o overthrow_v the_o cause_n it_o will_v establish_v for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n in_o the_o judgement_n that_o we_o make_v by_o our_o own_o light_n who_o shall_v secure_v we_o that_o we_o do_v not_o deceive_v ourselves_o in_o choose_v the_o way_n of_o authority_n since_o we_o can_v make_v choice_n of_o that_o but_o by_o that_o same_o light_n which_o be_v say_v he_o so_o deceitful_a we_o can_v less_o fear_v in_o that_o very_a thing_n the_o obscurity_n of_o our_o understanding_n our_o prejudices_fw-la and_o passion_n the_o inclination_n that_o we_o have_v to_o error_n and_o who_o shall_v assure_v that_o author_n who_o shall_v assure_v we_o ourselves_o that_o that_o persuasion_n where_o it_o be_v and_o which_o he_o will_v communicate_v to_o we_o be_v not_o a_o effect_n of_o his_o prejudices_fw-la of_o his_o passion_n or_o of_o some_o obstinacy_n in_o his_o opinion_n who_o shall_v warrant_v
how_o to_o read_v what_o will_v become_v of_o those_o who_o have_v no_o understanding_n nor_o any_o readiness_n of_o mind_n how_o can_v all_o those_o people_n examine_v all_o those_o point_n the_o discussion_n of_o the_o least_o of_o which_o notwithstanding_o be_v evident_o necessary_a to_o make_v they_o rational_o determine_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o see_v that_o all_o that_o heap_n of_o objection_n and_o difficulty_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v propose_v against_o the_o way_n of_o the_o scripture_n tend_v only_o to_o lead_v man_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v subject_v themselves_o to_o that_o as_o a_o sovereign_n and_o infallible_a rule_n but_o as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o that_o church_n be_v not_o one_o of_o those_o first_o principle_n which_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n dictate_v to_o all_o man_n since_o of_o thirty_o part_n of_o our_o know_a world_n there_o be_v at_o least_o nine_o and_o twenty_o who_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v it_o and_o as_o they_o can_v also_o say_v that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o first_o and_o common_a notion_n of_o christianity_n since_o of_o all_o those_o who_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n there_o be_v three_o part_n which_o reject_v it_o the_o author_n may_v free_o give_v we_o leave_v if_o he_o please_v that_o we_o shall_v first_o demand_v of_o he_o upon_o what_o foundation_n he_o will_v build_v that_o doctrine_n to_o make_v we_o receive_v it_o as_o a_o point_n of_o divine_a faith_n i_o say_v of_o divine_a faith_n for_o if_o we_o shall_v hold_v it_o only_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o human_a faith_n he_o himself_o will_v see_v well_o that_o we_o can_v not_o believe_v the_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v teach_v in_o virtue_n of_o its_o authority_n otherwise_o then_o with_o a_o humane_a faith_n since_o the_o thing_n which_o depend_v upon_o a_o principle_n can_v make_v a_o impression_n in_o we_o different_a from_o that_o which_o the_o principle_n have_v make_v to_o the_o end_n therefore_o that_o i_o shall_v believe_v with_o a_o divine_a faith_n that_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v teach_v i_o by_o its_o authority_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o i_o shall_v also_o believe_v its_o authority_n with_o a_o divine_a faith_n thus_o far_o methinks_v we_o shall_v not_o have_v any_o controversy_n let_v we_o see_v therefore_o upon_o what_o foundation_n of_o divine_a faith_n he_o will_v pretend_v to_o establish_v this_o proposition_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v sovereign_a and_o infallible_a he_o can_v only_o do_v it_o by_o these_o three_o way_n the_o first_o be_v by_o a_o new_a revelation_n that_o god_n shall_v have_v make_v to_o we_o of_o this_o truth_n the_o second_o in_o show_v that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o article_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o three_o in_o show_v we_o the_o character_n of_o divinity_n and_o infallibility_n impress_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n even_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o every_o thing_n prove_v itself_o by_o the_o mark_n that_o distinguish_v it_o and_o thus_o it_o be_v that_o we_o pretend_v that_o the_o scripture_n force_v the_o acknowledgement_n of_o its_o own_o divinity_n the_o first_o of_o these_o way_n be_v nullify_v since_o they_o agree_v with_o we_o that_o since_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n there_o have_v be_v no_o new_a revelation_n and_o that_o there_o must_v not_o be_v any_o expect_v the_o second_o will_v be_v proper_a and_o necessary_o suppose_v a_o recourse_n either_o to_o tradition_n or_o the_o scripture_n for_o there_o be_v but_o these_o two_o channel_n in_o which_o we_o can_v seek_v for_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o that_o of_o the_o scripture_n be_v forbid_v we_o by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la by_o reason_n of_o the_o unconquerable_a difficulty_n which_o he_o discover_v there_o it_o be_v say_v he_o a_o way_n full_a of_o obstacle_n and_o difficulty_n and_o even_o those_o who_o profess_v to_o spend_v all_o their_o day_n in_o the_o study_n of_o divinity_n aught_o to_o judge_v that_o examination_n to_o be_v above_o all_o their_o ability_n he_o must_v therefore_o content_v himself_o with_o the_o way_n of_o tradition_n but_o before_o he_o can_v make_v use_n of_o that_o he_o must_v be_v first_o assure_v and_o that_o with_o a_o certainty_n of_o divine_a faith_n that_o that_o which_o that_o tradition_n contain_v be_v come_v down_o from_o the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o at_o least_o that_o this_o particular_a point_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o state_n wherein_o it_o be_v at_o present_a must_v have_v proceed_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o apostle_n must_v have_v transmit_v it_o viva_fw-la voce_fw-mi down_z to_o their_o successor_n and_o that_o their_o successor_n must_v have_v receive_v it_o and_o transmit_v it_o down_o to_o those_o who_o descend_v from_o they_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n and_o every_o whit_n the_o same_o as_o the_o apostle_n have_v give_v it_o to_o they_o if_o he_o can_v be_v assure_v of_o that_o transmission_n all_o that_o he_o will_v build_v upon_o it_o will_v be_v uncertain_a and_o if_o he_o can_v be_v assure_v of_o it_o with_o a_o divine_a faith_n that_o which_o he_o will_v build_v upon_o it_o will_v not_o be_v more_o so_o but_o how_o can_v he_o be_v assure_v of_o that_o he_o have_v no_o more_o that_o live_a voice_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o represent_v it_o to_o we_o he_o must_v rely_v upon_o testimony_n will_v it_o therefore_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n that_o must_v assure_v we_o but_o her_o divine_a and_o infallible_a authority_n be_v as_o yet_o in_o question_n and_o while_o it_o shall_v be_v question_v it_o remain_v suspend_v it_o can_v be_v believe_v any_o further_a than_o with_o a_o humane_a faith_n shall_v it_o be_v the_o scripture_n that_o must_v give_v testimony_n to_o that_o tradition_n but_o there_o be_v so_o many_o difficulty_n in_o that_o way_n say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la that_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o it_o be_v not_o that_o which_o god_n have_v choose_v to_o instruct_v we_o in_o his_o truth_n must_v we_o learn_v it_o from_o that_o tradition_n itself_o but_o to_o decide_v that_o point_n whether_o that_o tradition_n come_v from_o the_o apostle_n or_o no_o tradition_n itself_o can_v be_v yet_o no_o other_o than_o a_o humane_a testimony_n i_o mean_v that_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n declare_v to_o we_o that_o they_o have_v receive_v such_o and_o such_o doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n viva_fw-la voce_fw-la and_o that_o they_o have_v receive_v they_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n give_v they_o to_o they_o we_o can_v at_o the_o most_o have_v more_o than_o a_o humane_a faith_n for_o they_o for_o they_o be_v man_n as_o well_o as_o other_o hitherto_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v have_v a_o divine_a faith_n concern_v the_o point_n of_o the_o sovereign_n and_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o nothing_o by_o consequence_n that_o can_v assure_v the_o conscience_n and_o set_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n at_o rest_n let_v we_o therefore_o pass_v over_o to_o the_o three_o mean_n which_o be_v that_o of_o examine_v the_o character_n of_o divinity_n and_o infallibility_n that_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v in_o my_o judgement_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o this_o that_o they_o give_v we_o certain_a external_a mark_n and_o we_o have_v already_o see_v that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la establish_v upon_o this_o that_o authority_n about_o which_o we_o dispute_v the_o most_o eminent_a preface_n authority_n say_v he_o that_o can_v be_v in_o the_o world_n be_v easy_o discover_v to_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n because_o though_o there_o be_v sect_n that_o dispute_v with_o it_o the_o truth_n of_o its_o tenet_n yet_o there_o be_v none_o that_o can_v with_o any_o colour_n contend_v with_o it_o for_o that_o eminence_n of_o authority_n which_o arise_v from_o its_o external_n mark_v but_o without_o enter_v here_o far_o into_o the_o controversy_n touch_v those_o mark_n i_o say_v that_o he_o be_v very_o far_o from_o be_v able_a to_o establish_v such_o a_o certainty_n upon_o they_o as_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v of_o a_o principle_n of_o religion_n and_o this_o will_v appear_v from_o these_o three_o reason_n the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o those_o mark_n be_v common_a to_o false_a society_n and_o even_o to_o schismatical_a church_n which_o not_o only_o be_v not_o infallible_a but_o which_o be_v actual_o in_o error_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n the_o greek_a church_n for_o example_n in_o
council_n of_o ariminum_n and_o of_o constantinople_n which_o include_v all_o the_o east_n and_o all_o the_o west_n and_o if_o they_o have_v have_v no_o more_o but_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n of_o their_o actual_o govern_v pastor_n that_o they_o may_v have_v cleaved_a to_o a_o synod_n which_o be_v past_a and_o go_v it_o be_v therefore_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v contest_v and_o that_o of_o the_o error_n that_o be_v opposite_a to_o it_o which_o make_v the_o separation_n and_o not_o the_o mere_a authority_n of_o the_o nicene_n father_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o s._n augustine_n dispute_v against_o maximinus_n a_o arian_n will_v that_o they_o shall_v set_v aside_o as_o well_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a as_o that_o of_o ariminum_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v only_o contend_v about_o the_o thing_n themselves_o not_o but_o that_o sometime_o the_o orthodox_n do_v set_v before_o they_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o dispute_n where_o one_o will_v neglect_v no_o advantage_n for_o its_o be_v ever_o so_o small_a but_o it_o be_v as_o a_o little_a help_n and_o not_o as_o the_o essential_a reason_n of_o their_o separation_n which_o be_v always_o take_v from_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o that_o difference_n be_v very_o frivolous_a if_o they_o say_v last_o that_o the_o point_n that_o be_v controvert_v then_o be_v one_o of_o a_o far_o great_a importance_n than_o those_o upon_o which_o our_o father_n separate_v themselves_o i_o answer_v that_o indeed_o the_o article_n of_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a and_o most_o fundamental_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n but_o that_o do_v not_o hinder_v that_o those_o that_o be_v controvert_v between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o we_o shall_v not_o also_o be_v of_o the_o great_a importance_n to_o salvation_n and_o sufficient_a to_o cause_v a_o separation_n and_o when_o they_o will_v make_v the_o justice_n or_o injustice_n of_o we_o to_o depend_v on_o that_o they_o must_v quit_v all_o that_o vain_a dispute_n of_o prejudices_fw-la and_o go_v on_o to_o the_o discussion_n of_o the_o foundation_n itself_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la must_v not_o take_v it_o ill_o that_o in_o endeavour_v to_o decide_v the_o question_n concern_v the_o right_a of_o the_o separation_n of_o our_o father_n i_o make_v use_v here_o of_o his_o own_o proper_a testimony_n for_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n surprise_v enough_o that_o write_v in_o his_o eight_o and_o nine_o chapter_n in_o which_o he_o will_v he_o say_v convince_v we_o of_o schism_n without_o enter_v upon_o a_o discussion_n either_o of_o our_o doctrine_n 162._o or_o our_o mission_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v remember_v what_o he_o himself_o have_v just_a before_o say_v in_o the_o seven_o first_o of_o all_o he_o there_o propose_v this_o difficulty_n as_o on_o our_o side_n if_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v real_o fall_v into_o error_n as_o we_o suppose_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o it_o to_o do_v if_o it_o drive_v away_o the_o true_o faithful_a from_o its_o bosom_n if_o it_o persecute_v 153._o they_o must_v those_o true_o faithful_a needs_o be_v deprive_v of_o all_o external_a worship_n in_o religion_n must_v they_o needs_o cleave_v to_o the_o church_n to_o perish_v with_o they_o since_o we_o suppose_v that_o it_o reside_v in_o they_o alone_o be_v it_o not_o against_o the_o divine_a providence_n that_o the_o true_a worshipper_n of_o god_n the_o true_a heir_n of_o heaven_n can_v form_v a_o church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o god_n have_v not_o leave_v any_o mean_n to_o provide_v against_o so_o strange_a a_o inconvenience_n he_o answer_v plain_o that_o indeed_o that_o inconvenience_n be_v exceed_o great_a but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o god_n shall_v have_v provide_v against_o it_o by_o remedy_n because_o he_o have_v resolve_v to_o hinder_v it_o from_o ever_o fall_v out_o in_o always_o preserve_v the_o true_a ministry_n in_o his_o church_n so_o that_o it_o can_v never_o be_v in_o a_o necessity_n of_o be_v reestablish_v and_o that_o very_a thing_n be_v a_o certain_a mark_n that_o that_o inconvenience_n can_v never_o happen_v in_o that_o god_n have_v not_o provide_v any_o remedy_n for_o it_o he_o say_v that_o so_o it_o be_v that_o our_o minister_n ought_v to_o conclude_v and_o not_o to_o conclude_v as_o they_o do_v in_o suppose_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n may_v fall_v into_o ruin_n that_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o establishment_n of_o a_o new_a ministry_n since_o immediate_o after_o he_o add_v but_o if_o the_o adhaesion_n which_o they_o have_v to_o their_o sentiment_n hinder_v they_o from_o come_v to_o agree_v to_o this_o consequence_n they_o ought_v rather_o to_o conclude_v that_o those_o pretend_v true_o faithful_a must_v remain_v in_o that_o state_n without_o pastor_n and_o without_o any_o external_a worship_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v rather_o expect_v that_o god_n shall_v raise_v up_o some_o extraordinary_o and_o with_o visible_a mark_n of_o their_o mission_n than_o to_o usurp_v to_o themselves_o a_o right_n of_o create_v minister_n and_o pastor_n and_o give_v they_o power_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n we_o have_v already_o show_v he_o and_o we_o shall_v yet_o further_o show_v he_o in_o the_o end_n that_o it_o be_v not_o without_o reason_n that_o we_o suppose_v that_o the_o ministry_n may_v be_v corrupt_v in_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v show_v he_o also_o that_o the_o consequence_n which_o we_o draw_v from_o it_o concern_v the_o re-establish_a of_o the_o ministry_n be_v just_a and_o right_a and_o that_o a_o faithful_a people_n have_v a_o right_n in_o that_o case_n to_o create_v their_o minister_n and_o their_o pastor_n and_o to_o give_v they_o power_n to_o govern_v their_o church_n and_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n but_o as_o we_o be_v only_o dispute_v at_o present_a about_o know_v whether_o we_o may_v separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n when_o they_o be_v fall_v into_o error_n incompatible_a with_o our_o salvation_n and_o when_o they_o will_v force_v the_o people_n to_o profess_v the_o same_o error_n it_o shall_v suffice_v at_o present_a to_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la come_v to_o agree_v that_o when_o person_n be_v persuade_v that_o the_o body_n of_o those_o who_o possess_v the_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n be_v fall_v into_o error_n and_o when_o it_o drive_v away_o from_o its_o bosom_n and_o persecute_v those_o who_o maintain_v the_o truth_n they_o may_v remain_v separate_v without_o acknowledge_v that_o body_n for_o their_o pastor_n and_o without_o assist_v in_o their_o external_a worship_n provide_v that_o they_o do_v not_o make_v other_o minister_n but_o who_o see_v not_o that_o this_o be_v precise_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o right_n of_o that_o separation_n about_o which_o the_o question_n at_o present_a be_v who_o see_v not_o that_o it_o be_v at_o least_o in_o that_o respect_n a_o discharge_v our_o father_n from_o the_o accusation_n of_o schism_n and_o to_o declare_v they_o further_o innocent_a of_o that_o crime_n which_o he_o will_v design_v to_o lay_v to_o their_o charge_n at_o last_o our_o father_n do_v not_o collect_v that_o consequence_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la they_o do_v not_o conclude_v that_o the_o ministry_n must_v be_v incorruptible_a in_o the_o church_n in_o that_o which_o it_o have_v of_o humane_a in_o it_o this_o be_v not_o a_o place_n to_o dispute_v whether_o they_o adhere_v too_o much_o to_o their_o own_o opinion_n where_o because_o that_o in_o effect_n they_o judge_v well_o that_o manner_n of_o reason_v be_v pernicious_a howsoever_o it_o be_v they_o have_v conclude_v quite_o otherwise_o they_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o body_n of_o those_o who_o possess_v the_o ordinary_a ministry_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v fall_v not_o only_o into_o a_o error_n but_o into_o many_o and_o into_o such_o as_o be_v contrary_a to_o man_n salvation_n that_o it_o be_v guilty_a of_o opinionativeness_n in_o maintain_v they_o that_o it_o do_v impose_v a_o necessity_n upon_o all_o to_o profess_v they_o that_o it_o drive_v away_o from_o its_o bosom_n those_o who_o refuse_v that_o obedience_n it_o be_v upon_o this_o that_o they_o separate_v themselves_o from_o they_o not_o acknowledge_v they_o any_o more_o for_o their_o pastor_n and_o assist_v no_o further_o in_o their_o external_a worship_n thus_o far_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la do_v not_o condemn_v they_o he_o will_v only_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v remain_v throughout_o without_o pastor_n and_o without_o external_a worship_n we_o shall_v see_v in_o its_o place_n whether_o
difficulty_n to_o be_v hear_v in_o a_o congregation_n in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o legate_n in_o this_o congregation_n they_o demand_v on_o the_o behalf_n of_o their_o master_n 1._o that_o the_o article_n of_o the_o superiority_n of_o the_o council_n above_o the_o pope_n decide_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n may_v be_v lay_v down_o for_o a_o foundation_n 2._o that_o the_o pope_n since_o he_o be_v a_o party_n in_o this_o affair_n shall_v not_o preside_v in_o the_o council_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v submit_v to_o it_o both_o himself_o and_o he_o see_v to_o be_v judge_v there_o 3._o that_o he_o shall_v for_o this_o effect_n absolve_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o oath_n that_o he_o have_v give_v they_o 4._o that_o the_o matter_n which_o have_v be_v already_o decide_v shall_v be_v judge_v of_o again_o after_o their_o divine_n have_v be_v hear_v since_o they_o can_v not_o till_o then_o have_v come_v to_o the_o council_n not_o have_v have_v safe-conduct_a 5._o that_o they_o shall_v defer_v all_o judgement_n till_o they_o come_v 6._o that_o they_o shall_v judge_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o common_a belief_n of_o all_o christian_a nation_n but_o the_o prelate_n will_v not_o hear_v these_o proposition_n and_o the_o legate_n who_o consult_v the_o pope_n upon_o all_o matter_n and_o more_o especial_o upon_o these_o have_v already_o thus_o vehement_o explain_v himself_o that_o they_o have_v much_o rather_o lose_v their_o life_n than_o release_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a see_n some_o day_n after_o the_o divine_n of_o wirtemberg_n and_o those_o of_o strasburg_n arrive_v at_o trent_n and_o present_v their_o confession_n demand_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v examine_v and_o offer_v themselves_o to_o explain_v and_o defend_v it_o but_o this_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o the_o pope_n have_v express_o forbid_v his_o legate_n to_o permit_v that_o they_o shall_v enter_v upon_o any_o public_a conference_n neither_o viuâ_fw-la voce_fw-la or_o by_o write_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n thus_o thing_n be_v carry_v on_o in_o this_o council_n but_o while_o affair_n be_v manage_v after_o this_o manner_n the_o pope_n who_o for_o some_o time_n before_o have_v be_v discontent_v at_o the_o emperor_n have_v make_v his_o treaty_n with_o king_n henry_n the_o second_o and_o the_o king_n on_o his_o side_n have_v also_o very_o secret_o treat_v with_o maurice_n the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n for_o the_o liberty_n of_o germany_n so_o that_o matter_n be_v all_o on_o a_o sudden_a ready_a for_o a_o war_n and_o the_o news_n be_v come_v to_o trent_n the_o pope_n present_o separate_v the_o assembly_n give_v order_n to_o his_o nuntio_n to_o give_v notice_n of_o it_o every_o where_o and_o to_o suspend_v the_o council_n till_o another_o time_n this_o war_n free_v germany_n from_o its_o slavery_n under_o charles_n he_o be_v force_v to_o set_v all_o the_o prince_n at_o liberty_n who_o he_o keep_v prisoner_n and_o in_o fine_a to_o make_v the_o peace_n which_o be_v conclude_v at_o passaw_n the_o last_o day_n of_o july_n 1552._o by_o this_o peace_n it_o be_v conclude_v that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v call_v within_o six_o month_n the_o general_n assembly_n of_o the_o empire_n there_o to_o provide_v mean_n for_o the_o accommodate_v of_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n and_o that_o notwithstanding_o no_o person_n shall_v be_v disquiet_v upon_o that_o occasion_n and_o thus_o the_o interim_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v abolish_v but_o if_o germany_n have_v then_o any_o quiet_a the_o persecution_n be_v inflame_v elsewhere_o against_o the_o reform_a edward_n the_o six_o be_v dead_a in_o england_n and_o mary_n have_v succeed_v he_o the_o pope_n send_v cardinal_n pool_n thither_o in_o quality_n of_o his_o legate_n who_o negotiate_v there_o the_o re-establish_a of_o the_o authority_n and_o religion_n of_o the_o pope_n this_o make_v the_o flame_n to_o be_v kindle_v and_o their_o punishment_n to_o be_v renew_v after_o the_o most_o cruel_a manner_n in_o the_o world_n for_o in_o one_o only_a year_n they_o make_v a_o infinite_a number_n of_o the_o people_n to_o be_v burn_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o religion_n and_o one_o hundred_o seventy_o and_o six_o person_n of_o great_a quality_n elizabeth_z the_o daughter_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o sister_n to_o mary_n be_v confine_v to_o a_o strait_a prison_n on_o the_o other_o side_n ferdinand_z king_n of_o hungary_n and_o bohemia_n and_o archduke_n of_o austria_n make_v a_o rigorous_a edict_n upon_o the_o same_o occasion_n for_o all_o the_o land_n of_o his_o obedience_n and_o drive_v away_o from_o bahemia_n alone_o more_o than_o two_o hundred_o minister_n the_o emperor_n on_o his_o part_n always_o cause_v the_o law_n of_o the_o inquisition_n to_o be_v most_o rigorous_o observe_v in_o the_o low-countries_n the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n do_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o his_o country_n france_n every_o day_n behold_v nothing_o but_o these_o sad_a execution_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o all_o these_o bloody_a pursuit_n do_v but_o increase_v in_o all_o place_n the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o embrace_v the_o reformation_n pope_n julius_n the_o three_o die_v the_o three_o and_o twenty_o of_o march_n 1555._o and_o marcellus_n the_o second_o be_v choose_v in_o his_o place_n who_o not_o have_v hold_v the_o see_v more_o than-two_a and_o twenty_o day_n have_v for_o his_o successor_n paul_n the_o four_o in_o this_o same_o year_n there_o be_v a_o imperial_a assembly_n hold_v at_o ausburg_n where_o the_o treaty_n of_o peace_n make_v at_o passaw_n be_v confirm_v and_o the_o freedom_n of_o religion_n grant_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n in_o germany_n the_o decree_n be_v present_o publish_v but_o notwithstanding_o the_o people_n of_o austria_n and_o bavaria_n have_v demand_v with_o very_o great_a urgency_n a_o reformation_n of_o their_o prince_n it_o be_v refuse_v they_o and_o they_o agree_v only_o that_o they_o shall_v receive_v the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n in_o wait_v for_o a_o council_n this_o do_v not_o fail_v to_o give_v great_a displeasure_n to_o the_o pope_n behold_v on_o one_o side_n that_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v swallow_v up_o by_o the_o superstition_n and_o error_n of_o his_o church_n and_o on_o the_o other_o that_o even_o the_o roman_n catholic_n prince_n of_o who_o he_o expect_v a_o entire_a obedience_n undertake_v without_o his_o consent_n to_o change_v something_o in_o religion_n in_o this_o same_o time_n charles_n the_o five_o weary_a of_o affair_n and_o have_v but_o a_o weak_a constitution_n resolve_v to_o quit_v the_o world_n and_o for_o this_o effect_n have_v make_v philip_n his_o son_n to_o come_v to_o brussells_n he_o demise_v to_o he_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o low-countries_n in_o his_o favour_n and_o a_o month_n after_o he_o yield_v to_o he_o the_o crown_n of_o spain_n he_o resign_v the_o empire_n to_o ferdinand_n his_o brother_n and_o reserve_v to_o himself_o the_o pension_n of_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o crown_n he_o retire_v into_o a_o monastery_n this_o happen_v in_o the_o year_n 1556._o and_o he_o die_v two_o year_n after_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o of_o september_n 1558._o pope_n paul_n the_o four_o from_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o his_o papacy_n turn_v all_o his_o thought_n to_o avoid_v the_o council_n and_o to_o make_v the_o rigour_n of_o the_o inquisition_n to_o rule_v in_o all_o place_n say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a mean_n to_o destroy_v heresy_n and_o the_o only_a fort_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_n for_o this_o effect_n he_o make_v a_o ordinance_n which_o he_o cause_v all_o the_o cardinal_n to_o sign_n by_o which_o he_o renew_v all_o the_o censure_n and_o punishment_n denounce_v by_o his_o predecessor_n against_o the_o heretic_n and_o declare_v that_o all_o the_o prelate_n prince_n king_n and_o emperor_n fall_v into_o heresy_n aught_o to_o be_v hold_v fall_v from_o and_o deprive_v of_o all_o their_o benefice_n estate_n kingdom_n or_o empire_n without_o any_o other_o declaration_n that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v reestablish_v by_o any_o authority_n not_o even_o by_o that_o of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v and_o that_o their_o good_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o first_o possessor_n he_o quarrel_v at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o ferdinand_n maintain_v that_o the_o resignation_n of_o charles_n in_o his_o favour_n can_v not_o be_v do_v but_o by_o his_o hand_n and_o that_o in_o that_o case_n it_o belong_v to_o he_o to_o make_v who_o he_o shall_v please_v emperor_n notwithstanding_o two_o thing_n fall_v out_o that_o give_v he_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o grief_n the_o one_o that_o mary_n queen_n of_o england_n be_v dead_a elizabeth_z succeed_v she_o and_o that_o the_o emperor_n ferdinand_n have_v propound_v to_o the_o protestant_n in_o the_o diet_n of_o ausburg_n which_o be_v hold_v in_o
but_o i_o deny_v that_o the_o consequence_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la pretend_v to_o draw_v from_o they_o be_v true_a we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o sequel_n whether_o the_o society_n of_o the_o protestant_n separate_v from_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v with_o any_o reason_n be_v call_v a_o new_a church_n we_o shall_v see_v also_o what_o right_o they_o have_v to_o a_o gospel-ministry_n and_o whether_o they_o can_v say_v that_o their_o ministry_n be_v new_a i_o consider_v only_o that_o principle_n which_o he_o propound_v which_o be_v that_o when_o the_o faithful_a separate_v themselves_o negative_o from_o those_o with_o who_o they_o be_v before_o unite_v they_o ought_v not_o to_o set_v up_o a_o society_n apart_o for_o he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o say_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v more_o contrary_a to_o piety_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o christianity_n i_o hold_v then_o that_o if_o that_o negative_a separation_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v just_o if_o it_o be_v necessary_a if_o they_o make_v it_o out_o of_o a_o good_a conscience_n not_o only_o they_o can_v but_o they_o ought_v to_o hold_v a_o christian_a society_n among_o themselves_o to_o make_v a_o visible_a body_n to_o assemble_v to_o pray_v to_o god_n together_o to_o read_v his_o word_n to_o consult_v and_o deliberate_v for_o their_o common_a interest_n even_o while_o they_o shall_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o great_a number_n of_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n or_o even_o when_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o pastor_n among_o they_o i_o mean_v that_o that_o be_v not_o only_o a_o right_n but_o a_o duty_n a_o obligation_n and_o such_o a_o obligation_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o can_v dispense_v with_o but_o a_o absolute_a and_o invincible_a impossibility_n the_o reason_n upon_o which_o i_o find_v this_o proposition_n be_v take_v from_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n piety_n and_o charity_n for_o when_o god_n have_v give_v we_o these_o virtue_n he_o have_v by_o that_o very_a thing_n indispensable_o bind_v we_o to_o keep_v and_o strengthen_v they_o and_o by_o consequence_n he_o have_v bind_v we_o to_o practice_v those_o mean_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v establish_v for_o that_o purpose_n but_o among_o those_o mean_n that_o of_o external_n communion_n with_o our_o brethren_n to_o who_o he_o have_v give_v the_o same_o grace_n be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o considerable_a as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o therefore_o saint_n paul_n tell_v the_o believe_a hebrew_n let_v we_o take_v heed_n to_o stir_v up_o one_o another_o to_o charity_n 10._o and_o good_a work_n not_o forsake_v the_o assemble_v of_o ourselves_o together_o but_o admonish_v one_o another_o and_o to_o the_o colossian_n let_v the_o word_n 3._o of_o jesus_n christ_n dwell_v rich_o in_o you_o in_o all_o wisdom_n teach_v and_o admonish_v one_o another_o in_o psalm_n and_o hymn_n and_o spiritual_a song_n and_o to_o the_o thessalonian_n we_o entreat_v that_o you_o will_v admonish_v the_o 5._o disorderly_a that_o you_o comfort_v those_o that_o be_v in_o affliction_n that_o you_o uphold_v the_o weak_a and_o to_o the_o ephesian_n speak_v you_o one_o to_o another_o in_o 5._o psalm_n and_o hymn_n and_o spiritual_a song_n sing_v and_o make_v melody_n in_o your_o heart_n to_o the_o lord_n moreover_o according_a as_o our_o brethren_n labour_v on_o their_o part_n in_o the_o preservation_n and_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n piety_n hope_n and_o charity_n by_o the_o society_n that_o we_o hold_v with_o they_o so_o we_o produce_v the_o same_o effect_n in_o respect_n of_o they_o for_o we_o mutual_o edify_v one_o another_o but_o it_o be_v further_o a_o duty_n to_o which_o christianity_n engage_v we_o god_n will_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v only_o labour_v for_o our_o own_o preservation_n he_o will_v have_v we_o also_o take_v care_n of_o that_o of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o it_o will_v be_v a_o detestable_a word_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o christian_a if_o he_o shall_v say_v with_o cain_n be_o i_o my_o brother_n keeper_n we_o be_v further_o bind_v to_o propagate_v our_o faith_n and_o piety_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o our_o child_n and_o to_o labour_v even_o to_o the_o utmost_a of_o our_o power_n to_o make_v it_o spring_v up_o in_o the_o soul_n of_o infidel_n as_o one_o light_v candle_n may_v light_v another_o which_o evident_o note_v that_o the_o instinct_n of_o christianity_n be_v a_o instinct_n of_o society_n that_o carry_v we_o out_o not_o only_o to_o own_o our_o brethren_n when_o they_o be_v so_o but_o to_o gain_v more_o than_o we_o have_v before_o and_o even_o those_o which_o we_o can_v have_v in_o fine_a piety_n will_v have_v we_o give_v god_n the_o high_a honour_n and_o worship_n that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o we_o to_o give_v he_o but_o it_o be_v certain_a 321._o that_o god_n be_v more_o honour_a in_o a_o society_n when_o all_o in_o one_o body_n offer_v up_o their_o prayer_n to_o he_o their_o vow_n and_o their_o praise_n than_o when_o each_o do_v it_o apart_o more_o heart_n unite_v together_o pay_v god_n a_o homage_n more_o worthy_a of_o his_o majesty_n they_o can_v then_o imagine_v a_o state_n more_o contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o christian_a piety_n and_o charity_n than_o that_o of_o dispersion_n nor_o by_o consequence_n any_o thing_n that_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o have_v more_o horror_n for_o and_o when_o the_o misery_n of_o the_o age_n shall_v cast_v they_o into_o it_o by_o a_o unavoidable_a necessity_n they_o ought_v always_o to_o preserve_v a_o spirit_n of_o society_n and_o to_o pant_v after_o the_o company_n of_o their_o brethren_n my_o soul_n say_v david_n then_o when_o he_o be_v in_o that_o condition_n thirst_v after_o god_n after_o the_o live_n and_o true_a god_n o_o when_o shall_v i_o come_v and_o appear_v before_o 42._o the_o presence_n of_o god_n my_o tear_n have_v be_v my_o meat_n day_n and_o night_n while_o they_o say_v unto_o i_o where_o be_v now_o thy_o god_n i_o remember_v the_o time_n wherein_o i_o go_v with_o the_o multitude_n and_o when_o i_o go_v sweet_o in_o company_n with_o other_o with_o the_o voice_n of_o triumph_n and_o praise_n unto_o the_o house_n of_o god_n it_o be_v so_o certain_a that_o the_o actual_a dispersion_n of_o the_o faithful_a do_v not_o break_v the_o natural_a bond_n of_o their_o society_n for_o they_o be_v always_o brethren_n child_n of_o the_o same_o family_n it_o can_v only_o suspend_v the_o act_n of_o it_o and_o when_o that_o absolute_a necessity_n which_o force_v they_o into_o dispersion_n be_v go_v they_o return_v of_o themselves_o natural_o into_o a_o actual_a society_n by_o the_o force_n of_o that_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n that_o be_v among_o they_o without_o any_o necessity_n of_o a_o new_a convocation_n it_o will_v signify_v nothing_o to_o say_v that_o the_o duty_n which_o i_o have_v note_v respect_n the_o faithful_a only_o then_o when_o they_o be_v already_o in_o a_o actual_a society_n but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o remain_v there_o nor_o to_o enter_v into_o it_o when_o they_o have_v no_o pastor_n to_o assemble_v they_o for_o i_o say_v that_o those_o duty_n arise_v not_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o society_n but_o from_o that_o of_o faith_n piety_n and_o charity_n and_o by_o consequence_n they_o bind_v they_o to_o preserve_v a_o actual_a society_n wherever_o it_o be_v and_o even_o to_o make_v one_o where_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o oblige_v we_o to_o unite_a all_o those_o to_o we_o in_o who_o we_o see_v the_o same_o faith_n piety_n and_o charity_n shine_v forth_o that_o we_o perceive_v in_o ourselves_o in_o a_o word_n since_o faith_n piety_n charity_n and_o the_o other_o christian_a virtue_n bind_v we_o to_o those_o duty_n they_o bind_v we_o also_o to_o a_o external_n society_n without_o which_o they_o can_v be_v perform_v whence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v call_v in_o the_o scripture_n sheep_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o ordinary_a pastor_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n to_o note_n that_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n and_o not_o the_o ministry_n which_o make_v the_o society_n and_o which_o render_v by_o consequence_n their_o assembly_n lawful_a and_o necessary_a chap._n ii_o that_o the_o society_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v not_o a_o new_a church_n one_o of_o the_o most_o ordinary_a and_o powerful_a mean_n that_o they_o make_v use_v of_o to_o render_v we_o odious_a to_o the_o people_n and_o to_o drive_v they_o from_o our_o communion_n be_v to_o represent_v we_o to_o they_o as_o innovator_n and_o full_a of_o confusion_n who_o have_v overthrow_v all_o and_o make_v a_o new_a religion_n and_o a_o new_a church_n and_o it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n
one_o may_v make_v a_o large_a volume_n of_o they_o if_o these_o ancient_a disorder_n be_v not_o so_o public_o know_v one_o have_v publish_v not_o long_o since_o a_o book_n of_o the_o rate_n of_o the_o chancellerie_n apostolic_a chamber_n and_o the_o tax_n enjoin_v for_o penance_n which_o alone_o declare_v more_o than_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a for_o we_o to_o stay_v upon_o for_o our_o edification_n there_o not_o only_o every_o dispatch_n of_o business_n but_o every_o sin_n also_o every_o crime_n have_v its_o set_a price_n and_o as_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v do_v without_o money_n so_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o money_n can_v do_v 19_o i_o can_v add_v to_o all_o that_o i_o have_v say_v a_o multitude_n of_o other_o thing_n that_o can_v not_o but_o have_v be_v very_o proper_a to_o have_v raise_v those_o prejudices_fw-la in_o the_o mind_n of_o our_o father_n whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v for_o those_o unjust_a way_n which_o rome_n have_v make_v use_n of_o to_o draw_v all_o affair_n to_o itself_o with_o all_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o west_n all_o the_o underhand_a canvassing_n and_o strange_a practice_n it_o have_v use_v in_o the_o election_n of_o pope_n the_o scandalous_a schism_n that_o have_v spring_v from_o the_o division_n of_o party_n and_o difference_n of_o election_n the_o bloody_a war_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v accuse_v to_o have_v divers_a time_n kindle_v among_o christian_a prince_n the_o intrigue_n the_o dishonest_a way_n whereby_o they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v serve_v themselves_o to_o engage_v the_o king_n and_o grandee_n of_o the_o world_n in_o their_o interest_n the_o endeavour_n they_o have_v always_o use_v to_o elude_v the_o demand_n of_o a_o reformation_n all_o these_o thing_n sufficient_o discover_v more_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o world_n then_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o will_v easy_o persuade_v all_o those_o who_o be_v not_o whole_o deprive_v of_o their_o reason_n that_o there_o must_v needs_o have_v be_v latent_fw-la at_o the_o bottom_n a_o extreme_a coruption_n but_o we_o ought_v to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o chapter_n and_o to_o leave_v a_o matter_n so_o ungrateful_a into_o which_o we_o have_v not_o at_o all_o enter_v if_o we_o have_v not_o be_v oblige_v by_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o just_a defence_n as_o i_o have_v before_o declare_v it_o only_o remain_v that_o we_o shut_v up_o in_o the_o close_a of_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v represent_v by_o conclude_v that_o they_o can_v at_o least_o without_o renounce_v all_o equity_n any_o more_o condemn_v our_o father_n either_o of_o rashness_n or_o presumption_n if_o they_o dare_v persuade_v themselves_o that_o the_o church_n and_o religion_n be_v fall_v into_o the_o very_o worst_a hand_n and_o if_o they_o judge_v from_o thence_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o enter_v upon_o a_o more_o particular_a scrutiny_n of_o those_o doctrine_n that_o they_o teach_v and_o of_o those_o law_n whereby_o they_o will_v bind_v their_o conscience_n that_o consequence_n which_o they_o draw_v from_o thence_o be_v but_o the_o just_a effect_n of_o a_o reason_n animate_v by_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o a_o desire_n which_o they_o have_v of_o their_o own_o salvation_n for_o what_o colour_n or_o pretence_n can_v there_o be_v that_o a_o disorder_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n so_o great_a so_o ancient_a so_o general_a shall_v not_o be_v accompany_v with_o a_o multitude_n of_o other_o error_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n chap._n iii_o that_o the_o external_n state_n of_o that_o religion_n itself_o have_v in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o father_n sign_n of_o its_o corruption_n sufficient_a to_o afford_v they_o just_a motive_n to_o examine_v it_o although_o these_o reflection_n that_o i_o have_v already_o set_v down_o draw_v from_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v very_o weighty_a and_o by_o themselves_o capable_a of_o make_v the_o most_o just_a impression_n on_o the_o mind_n and_o conscience_n of_o those_o who_o will_v set_v themselves_o to_o work_v out_o their_o own_o salvation_n according_a to_o the_o exhortation_n of_o the_o apostle_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a yet_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o imagine_v that_o our_o father_n be_v determine_v by_o those_o consideration_n alone_o they_o yet_o make_v other_o which_o they_o have_v that_o we_o may_v yet_o be_v more_o sensible_o touch_v by_o they_o since_o they_o have_v for_o their_o object_n not_o the_o outward_a form_n or_o state_n of_o the_o ministry_n nor_o the_o person_n who_o possess_v the_o office_n and_o dignity_n of_o the_o church_n but_o their_o religion_n itself_o in_o that_o state_n in_o which_o it_o be_v in_o their_o day_n for_o it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o it_o be_v scarce_o possible_a for_o those_o who_o do_v the_o least_o in_o the_o world_n fix_v their_o eye_n on_o that_o religion_n to_o consider_v its_o draught_n and_o its_o external_n form_n without_o discover_v or_o at_o least_o without_o discern_v infinite_a character_n of_o its_o corruption_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o i_o design_v to_o treat_v of_o in_o this_o chapter_n 1._o one_o of_o the_o chief_a object_n that_o present_v itself_o to_o our_o father_n be_v that_o of_o the_o great_a number_n of_o ceremony_n with_o which_o they_o behold_v that_o religion_n either_o shroud_v or_o overwhelm_v it_o matter_n little_a which_o of_o the_o two_o we_o affirm_v for_o which_o way_n soever_o we_o take_v it_o it_o be_v always_o a_o true_a portrait_n of_o the_o old_a oeconomy_n of_o moses_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v revive_v in_o the_o world_n they_o take_v special_a notice_n of_o their_o external_a sacrifice_n their_o solemn_a feast_n distinction_n of_o meat_n of_o their_o altar_n of_o their_o taper_n of_o their_o sacred_a vessel_n of_o their_o censing_n of_o their_o set_a fast_n throughout_o the_o year_n of_o their_o mystical_a figure_n and_o a_o multitude_n of_o particular_a thing_n altogether_o resemble_v those_o that_o be_v enjoin_v under_o the_o law_n and_o in_o general_a a_o great_a conformity_n to_o that_o antient-worship_n consist_v in_o such_o a_o love_n and_o excessive_a usage_n of_o ceremony_n this_o be_v without_o doubt_n a_o character_n very_o opposite_a to_o that_o of_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n where_o the_o spirit_n rule_v and_o not_o the_o letter_n and_o which_o be_v make_v free_a from_o all_o that_o great_a cumbrance_n of_o external_n observation_n st._n paul_n call_v these_o observance_n weak_a and_o beggarly_a element_n a_o yoke_n of_o bondage_n the_o 23._o rudiment_n of_o the_o world_n the_o shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v whereof_o the_o body_n be_v jesus_n christ_n and_o st._n peter_n a_o yoke_n which_o neither_o the_o jew_n in_o his_o day_n nor_o their_o father_n be_v able_a to_o bear_v jesus_n christ_n himself_o tell_v the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n that_o the_o time_n be_v come_v when_o the_o true_a worshipper_n of_o his_o father_n shall_v worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o they_o will_v have_v speak_v after_o that_o manner_n if_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n herself_o shall_v be_v burden_a with_o as_o many_o or_o more_o ceremony_n than_o the_o synagogue_n and_o if_o as_o tertulian_n speak_v god_n have_v not_o remove_v the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o law_n to_o substitute_n in_o their_o place_n the_o easy_a rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o will_v have_v preach_v to_o we_o the_o spirit_n and_o liberty_n only_o to_o have_v we_o subject_v again_o to_o the_o letter_n and_o to_o have_v place_v we_o under_o a_o servitude_n far_o more_o insupportable_a than_o the_o former_a 2._o moreover_o as_o our_o father_n see_v one_o part_n of_o those_o ceremony_n take_v from_o the_o jew_n so_o they_o preceive_v a_o multitude_n of_o other_o that_o be_v draw_v from_o or_o imitate_v the_o heathen_n by_o their_o approve_v of_o the_o same_o which_o they_o either_o authorize_v or_o practise_v for_o we_o may_v put_v into_o this_o rank_n the_o use_n of_o holy_a water_n or_o water_n consecrate_a for_o sprinkle_v in_o the_o entrance_n into_o church_n as_o well_o as_o private_a house_n and_o the_o funeral_n of_o the_o dead_a the_o blessing_n and_o the_o sprinkling_n the_o use_n of_o hospital_n in_o the_o baptism_n of_o little_a child_n the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n their_o canonization_n their_o patronage_n and_o order_v of_o their_o charge_n and_o employment_n their_o image_n and_o picture_n their_o agnus_n dei_n their_o feast_n for_o all_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o death_n of_o st._n john_n and_o many_o other_o their_o usage_n of_o procession_n of_o rogation_n their_o visit_v the_o shrine_n or_o relic_n of_o saint_n of_o set_v up_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n where_o four_o way_n meet_v of_o anniverssary_n for_o the_o dead_a of_o swear_v by_o their_o relic_n and_o
i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o other_o that_o be_v evident_o either_o the_o remnant_n or_o imitation_n of_o ancient_a paganism_n who_o will_v think_v it_o strange_a that_o a_o idea_n of_o a_o religion_n that_o plain_o appear_v to_o be_v so_o little_a advantageous_a to_o it_o or_o to_o say_v better_o which_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o true_a design_n of_o christianity_n shall_v have_v touch_v our_o father_n and_o inspire_v into_o they_o a_o desire_n of_o know_v those_o thing_n a_o little_a more_o particular_o than_o they_o have_v as_o yet_o do_v 3._o they_o be_v yet_o further_o carry_v out_o with_o that_o desire_n when_o they_o consider_v the_o ill_a effect_n that_o those_o ceremony_n borrow_a from_o the_o pagan_n have_v produce_v and_o some_o other_o that_o be_v annex_v to_o they_o as_o rosary_n chaplet_n holy_a salt_n their_o pilgrimage_n and_o and_o monastic_a vow_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n for_o they_o manifest_o fill_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n with_o superstition_n they_o cause_v a_o thousand_o abuse_n among_o the_o people_n they_o ordinary_o make_v way_n for_o lie_a forgery_n and_o which_o render_v they_o yet_o far_o more_o odious_a they_o foment_v a_o too_o natural_a negligence_n which_o every_o one_o have_v for_o work_n of_o true_a and_o solid_a piety_n whether_o by_o busy_v the_o mind_n of_o christian_n too_o much_o or_o persuade_v they_o that_o they_o have_v very_o well_o acquit_v themselves_o of_o their_o duty_n by_o do_v these_o external_n thing_n or_o last_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o infuse_v into_o they_o a_o false_a idea_n of_o divinity_n as_o if_o all_o its_o worship_n do_v consist_v in_o such_o trumpery_n who_o be_v it_o that_o see_v not_o what_o a_o great_a prejudice_n this_o be_v against_o a_o religion_n that_o teach_v such_o thing_n and_o so_o solemn_o enjoin_v they_o to_o be_v practise_v 4._o it_o have_v be_v yet_o very_o hard_o if_o our_o father_n have_v not_o be_v offend_v by_o that_o worldly_a pomp_n wherewith_o they_o see_v religion_n so_o excessive_o clothe_v for_o they_o very_o well_o know_v that_o true_a christianity_n be_v content_v to_o gain_v the_o heart_n and_o soul_n of_o man_n by_o the_o majesty_n of_o its_o doctrine_n and_o holiness_n of_o its_o precept_n and_o that_o for_o the_o rest_n it_o profess_v to_o retain_v its_o simplicity_n notwithstanding_o which_o they_o observe_v a_o clean_a contrary_a character_n in_o the_o magnificence_n of_o their_o tenple_n in_o the_o gold_n of_o their_o tabernacle_n in_o the_o pride_n of_o their_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o riches_n of_o their_o ornament_n and_o in_o general_a in_o all_o that_o external_a splendour_n which_o seem_v destine_v only_o to_o strike_v extraordinary_o the_o sense_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n to_o raise_v a_o ill_a ground_a admiration_n that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o only_o corrupt_a religion_n which_o as_o tertullian_n take_v notice_n labour_v to_o gain_v their_o authority_n and_o to_o obtain_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o people_n by_o their_o baptismo_fw-la pomp_n and_o their_o profuseness_n 5._o the_o natural_a effect_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n when_o they_o be_v receive_v with_o faith_n and_o when_o its_o worship_n be_v practise_v with_o devotion_n be_v to_o comfort_v the_o conscience_n and_o to_o give_v it_o a_o certain_a satisfaction_n and_o calm_a which_o be_v better_o feel_v than_o it_o can_v be_v express_v but_o our_o father_n be_v so_o far_o from_o receive_v that_o effect_n from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n wherein_o they_o make_v in_o their_o day_n almost_o the_o fundamental_o of_o religion_n to_o consist_v as_o in_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n the_o absolute_a obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n or_o to_o his_o council_n the_o conceit_n of_o man_n satisfaction_n the_o adoration_n of_o relic_n the_o pilgrimage_n and_o other_o thing_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n they_o be_v i_o say_v so_o far_o from_o receive_v it_o from_o these_o doctrine_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_n they_o can_v not_o but_o feel_v secret_a remorse_n after_o have_v practise_v they_o for_o the_o conscience_n of_o christian_n be_v natural_o carry_v out_o to_o none_o but_o god_n alone_o and_o can_v endure_v that_o that_o which_o be_v due_a to_o he_o shall_v be_v divide_v between_o he_o and_o the_o creature_n they_o have_v natural_o a_o reluctance_n to_o call_v upon_o any_o other_o be_v then_o the_o first_o cause_n of_o all_o to_o pay_v a_o religious_a service_n to_o lifeless_a image_n to_o subject_v themselves_o to_o any_o other_o oracle_n then_o that_o of_o god_n to_o attribute_v any_o part_n of_o their_o redemption_n to_o any_o other_o beside_o jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v acquire_v for_o they_o a_o fullness_n of_o salvation_n and_o in_o a_o word_n to_o lay_v hold_n on_o any_o creature_n as_o the_o object_n of_o their_o confidence_n or_o piety_n so_o our_o father_n know_v from_o their_o own_o experience_n that_o these_o tenet_n and_o devotion_n be_v not_o only_o barren_a of_o all_o that_o quiet_a but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n contrary_a to_o the_o peace_n of_o their_o soul_n they_o can_v not_o but_o receive_v a_o great_a prejudice_n against_o those_o tenet_n and_o against_o those_o devotion_n themselves_o and_o against_o that_o religion_n that_o propose_v they_o 6._o but_o that_o be_v not_o all_o they_o see_v yet_o many_o thing_n in_o that_o religion_n most_o formal_o opposite_a to_o many_o plain_a and_o express_v passage_n of_o scripture_n as_o the_o point_n of_o image_n to_o the_o second_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o any_o grave_a image_n etc._n etc._n that_o of_o communion_n only_o in_o one_o kind_n to_o that_o command_n of_o jesus_n christ_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o that_o of_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n to_o the_o prohibition_n of_o st._n paul_n in_o the_o fourteen_o of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n else_o if_o thou_o shall_v bless_v with_o the_o spirit_n how_o shall_v he_o that_o occupy_v the_o room_n of_o the_o unlearned_a say_v amen_o at_o thy_o give_v of_o thanks_o see_v he_o vuderstand_v not_o what_o thou_o say_v for_o thou_o very_o give_v thanks_o well_o but_o the_o other_o be_v not_o edify_v and_o the_o business_n of_o blind_a subjection_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n to_o that_o strict_a declaration_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o have_v not_o dominion_n over_o your_o faith_n that_o of_o the_o papal_a monarchy_n to_o these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o king_n of_o the_o gentile_n exercise_v lordship_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o with_o you_o that_o of_o humane_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o word_n of_o st._n john_n the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n and_o that_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n to_o that_o doctrine_n of_o st._n paul_n to_o the_o hebrew_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v once_o offer_v up_o himself_o for_o we_o i_o do_v not_o at_o all_o inquire_v whether_o the_o force_n of_o these_o passage_n may_v be_v elude_v and_o distort_v to_o a_o sense_n that_o may_v agree_v with_o those_o point_n which_o i_o have_v mention_v i_o do_v not_o enter_v upon_o that_o it_o be_v enough_o if_o any_o see_v that_o opposition_n of_o which_o i_o speak_v to_o appear_v at_o 1_o sight_n that_o it_o likewise_o strike_v the_o soul_n and_o seem_v at_o least_o strong_a enough_o to_o create_v great_a scruple_n and_o to_o form_v a_o prejudice_n that_o carry_v our_o father_n on_o to_o examine_v those_o thing_n a_o little_a more_o narrow_o 7._o to_o which_o they_o be_v yet_o further_o urge_v by_o the_o consideration_n that_o they_o make_v of_o some_o maxim_n and_o distinction_n which_o they_o ordinary_o make_v use_v of_o to_o uphold_v the_o worship_v of_o creature_n for_o they_o discover_v in_o they_o something_o that_o be_v extreme_o scandalous_a for_o example_n where_o they_o maintain_v the_o worship_v of_o angel_n and_o that_o of_o the_o saint_n by_o say_v that_o they_o do_v not_o adore_v they_o but_o by_o a_o low_a sort_n of_o adoration_n proportion_v to_o the_o excellency_n they_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v in_o they_o not_o that_o they_o give_v they_o that_o supreme_a adoration_n which_o be_v due_a to_o none_o but_o god_n alone_o i_o do_v not_o here_o put_v it_o in_o question_n whether_o this_o distinction_n be_v good_a or_o bad_a it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o it_o have_v the_o ill_a luck_n to_o fall_v in_o with_o that_o which_o the_o ancient_a heathen_n make_v use_v of_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o those_o adoration_n which_o they_o pay_v to_o their_o genius_n to_o their_o hero_n to_o their_o demy_fw-fr and_o inferior_a god_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o pagan_n say_v the_o same_o that_o man_n do_v they_o great_a wrong_n in_o lay_v it_o to_o their_o charge_n that_o they_o worship_v their_o genius_n and_o inferior_a god_n with_o that_o sovereign_a worship_n
condemn_v they_o to_o be_v burn_v alive_a and_o to_o cause_v that_o sentence_n of_o their_o condemnation_n to_o be_v execute_v for_o so_o that_o council_n violate_v the_o public_a faith_n by_o a_o most_o solemn_a and_o resplendent_a action_n 19_o but_o it_o be_v not_o content_v with_o that_o unless_o it_o do_v at_o the_o same_o time_n add_v a_o decree_n that_o it_o express_o make_v on_o that_o subject_a bear_v this_o with_o it_o that_o all_o letter_n of_o safe_a conduct_n grant_v to_o heretic_n by_o any_o emperor_n king_n or_o prince_n ought_v not_o to_o hinder_v the_o judge_n to_o who_o it_o shall_v appertain_v to_o take_v cognisance_n of_o their_o crime_n whether_o they_o be_v layman_n or_o churchman_n from_o proceed_n against_o they_o and_o punish_v they_o with_o the_o great_a severity_n aeneas_n silvius_n relate_v that_o that_o sentence_n through_o the_o force_n of_o which_o they_o be_v expose_v to_o the_o fire_n be_v give_v in_o full_a council_n lata_fw-la est_fw-la say_v he_o in_o concessu_fw-la patrum_fw-la adversus_fw-la contumaces_fw-la sententia_fw-la cremandos_fw-la esse_fw-la qui_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la respuerent_a 36._o prio_fw-la igitur_fw-la joannes_n combustus_fw-la est_fw-la hieronimus_fw-la diu_fw-la postea_fw-la in_o vinculis_fw-la habitus_fw-la cum_fw-la resipiscere_fw-la nollet_fw-la pari_fw-la supplicio_fw-la affectus_fw-la he_o add_v that_o those_o two_o man_n suffer_v that_o torment_n with_o and_o admirable_a fortitude_n sing_v of_o hymn_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o flame_n this_o be_v in_o that_o time_n very_o astonish_v to_o see_v a_o council_n gather_v in_o a_o body_n whole_o intent_n upon_o the_o cause_v the_o death_n of_o two_o christian_n since_o it_o be_v certain_a among_o christian_n that_o the_o church_n have_v no_o power_n over_o the_o temporal_a life_n of_o man_n but_o that_o scandal_n be_v yet_o make_v great_a by_o the_o way_n they_o carry_v it_o on_o for_o to_o come_v to_o that_o they_o make_v no_o difficulty_n of_o violate_v all_o that_o be_v the_o most_o sacred_a and_o inviolable_a in_o humane_a society_n i_o will_v say_v the_o public_a faith_n give_v by_o the_o authentic_a authority_n of_o the_o sovereign_a magistrate_n and_o give_v with_o all_o the_o appearance_n of_o their_o own_o consent_n as_o one_o may_v collect_v from_o the_o word_n of_o aeneas_n silvius_n for_o he_o say_v as_o that_o council_n be_v labour_v in_o the_o affair_n of_o bohemia_n placuit_fw-la tandem_fw-la sigismundo_n imperatore_n suadente_fw-la joannem_fw-la &_o hieronymuus_fw-la ad_fw-la synodum_fw-la vocari_fw-la they_o think_v good_a through_o the_o entreaty_n of_o the_o emperor_n sigismond_n that_o john_n and_o jerome_n shall_v be_v call_v to_o the_o council_n they_o then_o make_v no_o scruple_n of_o violate_v that_o faith_n to_o which_o they_o have_v consent_v and_o not_o only_o to_o break_v it_o by_o that_o action_n and_o in_o that_o practice_n but_o frame_v at_o the_o same_o time_n a_o decree_n to_o authorise_v that_o breach_n of_o faith_n and_o make_v it_o a_o lawful_a rule_n for_o posterity_n to_o go_v by_o who_o can_v deny_v that_o our_o father_n have_v not_o here_o a_o just_a cause_n to_o be_v shake_v at_o that_o management_n of_o affair_n which_o have_v violent_o bear_v down_o all_o that_o wise_a and_o moderate_a man_n since_o have_v conceive_v and_o that_o they_o have_v not_o reason_n to_o join_v that_o to_o all_o those_o other_o thing_n i_o have_v mention_v as_o a_o most_o powerful_a prejudice_n against_o a_o religion_n that_o maintain_v itself_o by_o such_o strange_a proceed_n 11._o they_o may_v have_v add_v also_o to_o the_o rest_n methinks_v the_o establishment_n of_o inquisition_n and_o usage_n of_o croisado_n against_o those_o who_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v heretic_n for_o it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o such_o a_o way_n of_o maintain_v religion_n by_o torment_n and_o army_n raise_v by_o the_o clergy_n as_o the_o pope_n have_v use_v some_o age_n since_o against_o the_o waldenses_n the_o albigenses_n the_o wicklifist_n and_o the_o hussites_n be_v not_o at_o all_o proper_a to_o make_v it_o be_v belove_v or_o to_o instil_v into_o man_n mind_n a_o extreme_a good_a opinion_n of_o it_o there_o where_o they_o will_v introduce_v the_o faith_n by_o force_n they_o shut_v up_o people_n heart_n instead_o of_o gain_v they_o that_o course_n be_v good_a no_o far_o than_o for_o temporal_a monarchy_n or_o mundane_a religion_n where_o man_n be_v not_o much_o concern_v whether_o they_o reign_v over_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n provide_v they_o reign_v over_o their_o body_n but_o that_o be_v not_o at_o all_o the_o way_n that_o jesus_n christ_n use_v who_o set_v up_o his_o throne_n in_o their_o conscience_n and_o who_o know_v no_o other_o conquest_n but_o those_o which_o the_o sword_n that_o come_v from_o his_o mouth_n gain_n 12._o but_o beside_o those_o cruel_a way_n which_o they_o make_v use_v of_o for_o the_o uphold_v their_o religion_n they_o employ_v yet_o other_o as_o well_o as_o those_o which_o though_o they_o be_v not_o so_o severe_a do_v not_o fail_v of_o be_v as_o odious_a and_o of_o raise_v as_o strong_a suspicion_n against_o that_o religion_n itself_o i_o may_v rank_v in_o this_o place_n those_o false_a miracle_n which_o they_o invent_v every_o day_n to_o gain_v credit_n to_o some_o doctrine_n and_o devotion_n which_o of_o themselves_o have_v no_o foundation_n at_o all_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o every_o own_o know_v how_o much_o these_o sort_n of_o fable_n be_v in_o use_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n and_o some_o age_n before_o with_o what_o care_n they_o spread_v they_o among_o the_o people_n in_o preach_v they_o up_o with_o zeal_n and_o defend_v they_o with_o heat_n and_o in_o stuff_v their_o legend_n with_o they_o and_o other_o book_n of_o that_o nature_n but_o every_o own_o know_v likewise_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o be_v so_o gross_o invent_v that_o a_o very_a mean_a understanding_n can_v easy_o detect_v their_o falseness_n we_o may_v join_v with_o those_o false_a miracle_n those_o story_n of_o vision_n or_o apparition_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n or_o some_o other_o saint_n to_o the_o religious_a man_n or_o woman_n which_o be_v so_o frequent_a that_o one_o can_v find_v nothing_o else_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o monk_n of_o those_o age_n we_o may_v place_v here_o also_o those_o so_o often_o devise_v tale_n of_o the_o return_n of_o soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n of_o their_o apparition_n their_o complaint_n and_o pitiful_a groan_n of_o their_o request_n to_o be_v ease_v of_o their_o pain_n by_o their_o mass_n and_o foundation_n and_o of_o the_o outcry_n and_o terrible_a din_n that_o they_o make_v upon_o man_n least_o neglect_v to_o perform_v what_o they_o beg_v of_o they_o i_o do_v not_o now_o examine_v whether_o those_o doctrine_n which_o give_v ground_n to_o those_o pretend_a miracle_n to_o those_o vision_n and_o apparition_n be_v evangelical_n or_o not_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o to_o note_v that_o that_o falseness_n that_o appear_v in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o those_o gross_a invention_n which_o be_v so_o often_o public_o detect_v render_v that_o religion_n just_o suspect_v not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o those_o opinion_n and_o devotion_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o authorise_v by_o those_o fraud_n but_o also_o in_o general_n as_o to_o all_o that_o which_o come_v under_o the_o name_n of_o tradition_n 13._o may_v we_o not_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n of_o so_o many_o forge_a and_o supposititious_a book_n the_o make_n and_o use_n of_o which_o have_v be_v so_o frequent_a in_o the_o age_n that_o precede_v the_o reformation_n not_o to_o meddle_v with_o what_o be_v report_v of_o the_o monk_n that_o they_o do_v not_o scruple_n to_o serve_v themselves_o by_o forge_a deed_n to_o enrich_v their_o convent_v and_o gain_v privilege_n to_o they_o without_o touch_v upon_o that_o there_o be_v few_o person_n that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o what_o character_n the_o decretal_a epistle_n of_o the_o ancient_a pope_n be_v collect_v under_o the_o name_n of_o one_o isidore_n mercator_n whereof_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n have_v make_v so_o advantageous_a a_o use_n for_o the_o establish_n of_o its_o authority_n and_o of_o the_o pretend_a donation_n of_o constantine_n by_o which_o that_o emperor_n be_v say_v to_o have_v give_v away_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o all_o its_o right_n to_o the_o pope_n every_o own_o know_v also_o how_o they_o have_v forge_v whole_a book_n and_o treatise_n under_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o venerable_a name_n as_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n to_o saint_n ignatius_n the_o work_n of_o dionysius_n the_o areopagite_n the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n martial_n the_o act_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o saint_n andrew_n by_o the_o priest_n of_o achaia_n the_o liturgy_n of_o saint_n james_n saint_z peter_z and_o of_o saint_n mark_n and_o divers_z other_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n
of_o such_o a_o miracle_n or_o what_o promise_n can_v we_o find_v of_o it_o in_o the_o scripture_n not_o to_o insist_v here_o that_o it_o very_o ill_o agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o among_o they_o who_o make_v the_o will_n of_o man_n so_o much_o lord_n of_o all_o his_o action_n that_o whatsoever_o grace_n god_n shall_v manifest_v towards_o it_o it_o remain_v always_o indifferent_a and_o free_a to_o follow_v that_o grace_n or_o to_o reject_v it_o it_o be_v then_o very_a certain_a that_o hitherto_o our_o father_n can_v not_o be_v very_o much_o edify_v in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o general_a but_o they_o be_v yet_o far_o less_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o particular_a for_o if_o we_o look_v only_o on_o one_o side_n they_o be_v plunge_v into_o that_o perplexity_n about_o the_o intention_n where_o they_o teach_v one_o another_o that_o the_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o effect_n of_o that_o consecration_n and_o that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o worship_n the_o host_n after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n as_o be_v jesus_n christ_n himself_o what_o assurance_n can_v they_o have_v of_o so_o important_a a_o change_n since_o it_o also_o depend_v upon_o so_o impenetrable_a a_o secret_a as_o that_o of_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o can_v only_o be_v know_v by_o god_n alone_o what_o assurance_n can_v they_o have_v that_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v what_o ground_n have_v they_o to_o give_v a_o supreme_a worship_n to_o a_o object_n of_o which_o none_o can_v have_v any_o certainty_n of_o faith_n what_o likelihood_n they_o shall_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v that_o which_o it_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v and_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v reckon_v a_o adorable_a object_n what_o likelihood_n that_o god_n will_v have_v give_v to_o his_o church_n so_o doubtful_a a_o object_n to_o be_v the_o object_n of_o perpetual_a adoration_n which_o on_o one_o side_n be_v so_o visible_a and_o so_o determinate_a that_o one_o may_v always_o say_v behold_v it_o but_o of_o which_o notwithstanding_o no_o one_o can_v be_v assure_v that_o it_o be_v that_o indeed_o be_v it_o any_o way_n agreeable_a to_o his_o goodness_n and_o his_o wisdom_n to_o leave_v the_o church_n to_o be_v perpetual_o hold_v in_o suspense_n in_o that_o inexplicable_a doubt_n and_o expose_v to_o the_o danger_n of_o take_v the_o bread_n for_o the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o wine_n for_o his_o real_a blood_n and_o reduce_v to_o the_o necessity_n of_o put_v that_o adoration_n daily_o to_o a_o hazard_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o one_o man_n chap._n iu._n that_o such_o a_o corruption_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n as_o our_o father_n have_v conceive_v be_v no_o way_n a_o impossible_a thing_n these_o thing_n be_v well_o nigh_o the_o chief_a object_n that_o strike_v the_o mind_n of_o our_o father_n and_o cain_v they_o to_o a_o more_o strict_a examination_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o that_o religion_n whether_o those_o motive_n be_v weak_a or_o strong_a just_a or_o unjust_a i_o leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o every_o rational_a man_n to_o determine_v but_o some_o may_v say_v what_o do_v your_o father_n never_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o so_o ordinary_a maxim_n and_o so_o general_o receive_v in_o their_o day_n that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v at_o least_o in_o matter_n relate_v to_o faith_n and_o the_o general_a rule_n of_o manner_n and_o if_o they_o have_v so_o call_v it_o to_o mind_n can_v they_o not_o by_o that_o very_a thing_n easy_o have_v repel_v all_o those_o importunate_a prejudices_fw-la of_o corruption_n which_o you_o have_v set_v before_o we_o it_o can_v be_v doubt_v but_o our_o father_n do_v often_o think_v of_o it_o but_o it_o can_v likewise_o be_v imagine_v that_o they_o will_v not_o have_v endeavour_v to_o search_v a_o little_a more_o narrow_o upon_o what_o that_o maxim_n be_v found_v what_o construction_n they_o ought_v to_o make_v of_o it_o if_o in_o a_o word_n that_o corruption_n whereof_o they_o see_v such_o great_a sign_n have_v be_v a_o thing_n absolute_o impossible_a 1._o i_o say_v then_o in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o one_o of_o the_o thought_n that_o most_o natural_o fall_v into_o their_o mind_n upon_o this_o matter_n be_v this_o that_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o have_v happen_v almost_o in_o all_o human_a affair_n may_v very_o well_o befall_v the_o christian_a religion_n in_o the_o space_n of_o about_o five_o hundred_o year_n wherein_o it_o have_v be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o latin_n roman_n every_o one_o may_v observe_v it_o to_o be_v change_v by_o the_o succeed_a age_n to_o be_v render_v so_o as_o it_o can_v not_o be_v know_v and_o to_o become_v quite_o another_o thing_n than_o it_o be_v at_o first_o according_a as_o they_o degenerate_v from_o their_o original_a that_o inclination_n that_o man_n have_v to_o alter_v the_o first_o institution_n of_o thing_n to_o add_v to_o they_o or_o diminish_v from_o they_o to_o give_v to_o they_o new_a form_n and_o new_a custom_n reign_v at_o least_o as_o much_o in_o our_o western_a part_n as_o among_o other_o nation_n it_o reign_v also_o so_o universal_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o reserve_v from_o its_o dominion_n either_o in_o their_o language_n or_o their_o discipline_n or_o their_o profession_n or_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o people_n or_o in_o their_o law_n or_o in_o the_o distribution_n of_o justice_n or_o in_o one_o word_n in_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n that_o depend_v in_o any_o manner_n whatsoever_o on_o the_o management_n of_o man_n it_o have_v be_v then_o a_o kind_n of_o miracle_n if_o religion_n have_v be_v spare_v and_o its_o truth_n its_o worship_n and_o custom_n regard_v and_o keep_v with_o so_o great_a care_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v alter_v in_o that_o either_o by_o addition_n or_o diminution_n and_o we_o can_v say_v that_o religion_n be_v so_o heavenly_a and_o divine_a a_o thing_n be_v also_o above_o all_o those_o accident_n for_o it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o it_o be_v divine_a in_o itself_o and_o consequent_o inviolable_a de_fw-la jure_fw-la and_o of_o right_a but_o there_o be_v none_o that_o see_v it_o not_o in_o effect_n too_o often_o violate_v through_o the_o rashness_n of_o man_n and_o our_o father_n be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o as_o perfect_o holy_a as_o it_o be_v yet_o it_o be_v find_v to_o be_v as_o much_o or_o more_o expose_v to_o the_o passion_n and_o disorder_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n in_o all_o other_o thing_n 2._o but_o beside_o that_o general_a inclination_n which_o never_o fail_v to_o change_v thing_n from_o their_o natural_a state_n our_o father_n can_v not_o but_o know_v also_o that_o all_o man_n do_v very_o much_o lean_v towards_o superstition_n and_o error_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n they_o see_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o in_o those_o chimaera_n wherewith_o the_o false_a religion_n have_v fill_v the_o world_n chimaera_n that_o be_v yet_o so_o much_o the_o more_o strange_a as_o those_o people_n who_o believe_v and_o authorise_v they_o as_o the_o greek_n and_o roman_n do_v appear_v as_o to_o every_o thing_n else_o to_o have_v mind_n exceed_o enlighten_v and_o refine_a which_o make_v our_o father_n clear_o see_v that_o blind_a love_n that_o man_n always_o have_v for_o error_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o without_o doubt_n that_o very_a thing_n carry_v they_o out_o to_o suspect_v that_o that_o pretention_n to_o infallibility_n be_v null_a and_o vain_a and_o that_o there_o may_v very_o well_o be_v corruption_n in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o those_o time_n for_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o that_o ill_a inclination_n shall_v have_v have_v no_o place_n among_o those_o of_o the_o latin_a church_n that_o it_o be_v whole_o extinguish_v beyond_o a_o possibility_n of_o return_v or_o that_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n will_v not_o make_v use_n of_o it_o for_o our_o destruction_n or_o that_o have_v make_v use_v of_o it_o it_o shall_v remain_v so_o long_o without_o any_o effect_n during_o the_o course_n of_o so_o many_o age_n 3._o the_o example_n of_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n whereof_o the_o bible_n teach_v we_o the_o history_n confirm_v our_o father_n in_o those_o thought_n that_o be_v the_o very_a church_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o the_o christian_n that_o church_n be_v purchase_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o well_o as_o we_o although_o that_o blood_n have_v not_o yet_o be_v shed_v god_n not_o only_o keep_v his_o choose_a and_o his_o true_o faithful_a under_o that_o ministration_n but_o he_o have_v not_o any_o other_o church_n nor_o any_o other_o ministry_n in_o all_o the_o world_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o child_n whence_o it_o
follow_v not_o only_o that_o god_n have_v the_o same_o concern_v in_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o purity_n of_o that_o church_n as_o of_o that_o of_o the_o latin_a church_n but_o that_o he_o have_v yet_o a_o far_o great_a for_o above_o this_o that_o church_n have_v external_a help_n for_o the_o conversation_n of_o its_o purity_n far_o great_a than_o the_o latin_a church_n ever_o have_v for_o it_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o one_o only_a people_n and_o in_o one_o country_n only_o it_o have_v one_o language_n only_o one_o only_a tabernacle_n one_o only_a temple_n but_o one_o civil_a government_n but_o one_o only_a political_a law_n and_o but_o one_o king_n where_o the_o western_a church_n have_v all_o those_o apart_o in_o many_o place_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v keep_v from_o corruption_n not_o only_o at_o one_o but_o divers_a time_n not_o only_o in_o matter_n of_o small_a consequence_n but_o after_o a_o strange_a manner_n by_o a_o heap_n of_o deprave_a tradition_n by_o false_a gloss_n on_o the_o law_n by_o open_a idolatry_n and_o by_o a_o multitude_n of_o other_o thing_n wherewith_o their_o prophet_n reproach_v they_o have_v they_o not_o then_o very_a great_a reason_n to_o think_v that_o the_o latin_a church_n which_o have_v no_o peculiar_a promise_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v keep_v from_o corruption_n in_o be_v distinguish_v from_o that_o of_o israel_n be_v not_o more_o happy_a than_o that_o in_o the_o conservation_n of_o its_o purity_n 4._o to_o this_o example_n of_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n our_o father_n adjoin_v that_o of_o the_o greek_a and_o other_o eastern_a church_n which_o god_n have_v at_o first_o honour_v with_o christianity_n as_o well_o as_o the_o latin_a and_o that_o the_o time_n have_v nevertheless_o so_o dissigure_v they_o that_o they_o do_v not_o any_o far_o appear_v to_o be_v what_o they_o be_v heretofore_o indeed_o into_o what_o error_n and_o superstition_n do_v not_o those_o church_n fall_n and_o in_o how_o many_o point_n do_v not_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n find_v itself_o to_o differ_v at_o this_o day_n from_o they_o some_o of_o they_o observe_v circumcision_n with_o baptism_n other_o keep_v up_o the_o sacrifice_a of_o live_a creature_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n some_o solemn_o every_o year_n baptise_v their_o river_n and_o their_o horse_n other_o believe_v that_o the_o smoke_n of_o incense_n take_v away_o their_o sin_n other_o hold_v that_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a deliver_v from_o the_o pain_n of_o damnation_n those_o soul_n that_o be_v then_o in_o hell_n other_o give_v passport_n in_o due_a form_n to_o the_o die_a to_o carry_v they_o to_o paradise_n and_o a_o thousand_o other_o suchlike_a impertinency_n that_o be_v find_v to_o be_v establish_v among_o those_o people_n why_o may_v it_o not_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o latin_a church_n shall_v have_v degenerate_v as_o well_o as_o those_o church_n be_v it_o that_o their_o christianity_n be_v from_o the_o beginning_n different_z from_o that_o of_o the_o latin_n or_o be_v it_o because_o the_o latin_a church_n have_v some_o peculiar_a privilege_n beyond_o all_o other_o no_o certain_o their_o vocation_n be_v equal_a on_o one_o part_n and_o on_o the_o other_o and_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n be_v so_o if_o those_o nation_n have_v corrupt_v themselves_o those_o of_o rome_n may_v corrupt_v themselves_o as_o well_o as_o they_o 5._o our_o father_n who_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o those_o example_n can_v not_o but_o represent_v all_o to_o themselves_o also_o in_o my_o judgement_n the_o time_n past_a wherein_o error_n and_o corruption_n have_v visible_o prevail_v over_o the_o truth_n even_o then_o when_o those_o very_a church_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n be_v join_v together_o in_o one_o body_n they_o know_v that_o that_o have_v pass_v in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o macedonian_n in_o the_o council_n of_o sirmium_n of_o milan_n of_o ariminum_n at_o selucia_n and_o at_o constantinople_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o arrian_n and_o in_o a_o council_n at_o ephesus_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o eutychian_o without_o think_v of_o that_o which_o they_o say_v of_o those_o two_o council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o iconoclaste_n or_o abolisher_n of_o image_n the_o one_o under_o the_o emperor_n leo_n isaurious_a the_o other_o under_o constantine_n copronimus_n that_o very_a thing_n be_v a_o evident_a token_n to_o they_o that_o the_o latin_a church_n may_v be_v very_o likely_a in_o their_o time_n fall_v into_o other_o corruption_n and_o that_o error_n have_v triumph_v over_o truth_n for_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o impossible_a that_o that_o which_o have_v happen_v frequent_o in_o respect_n of_o some_o error_n may_v not_o yet_o with_o great_a success_n and_o long_a duration_n happen_v in_o respect_n of_o other_o error_n 6._o moreover_o they_o observe_v that_o council_n of_o a_o great_a name_n among_o the_o latin_n as_o those_o of_o constance_n and_o basil_n have_v be_v reject_v and_o oppose_v by_o other_o council_n and_o that_o in_o the_o most_o weighty_a point_n of_o religion_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o supreme_a authority_n that_o ought_v to_o govern_v the_o church_n upon_o earth_n for_o some_o raise_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n above_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o other_o will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v have_v a_o absolute_a and_o a_o independent_a and_o perfect_o monarchical_a rule_n over_o the_o church_n what_o can_v our_o father_n conclude_v from_o so_o manifest_a a_o contest_v if_o not_o that_o it_o have_v a_o vast_a confusion_n in_o it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v exceed_o necessary_a to_o the_o quiet_a settle_n of_o their_o mind_n and_o conscience_n to_o enter_v on_o a_o examination_n of_o that_o which_o those_o man_n teach_v in_o the_o business_n of_o religion_n 7._o our_o father_n be_v confirm_v in_o that_o design_n when_o they_o set_v before_o their_o eye_n those_o obscure_a age_n through_o which_o the_o latin_a church_n have_v past_a for_o who_o know_v not_o what_o the_o nine_o ten_o and_o eleven_o century_n be_v not_o to_o speak_v of_o those_o that_o follow_v they_o as_o for_o the_o nine_o baronius_n be_v force_v to_o conclude_v the_o history_n of_o it_o with_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o age_n of_o affliction_n to_o the_o church_n in_o general_n and_o chief_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o well_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o complaint_n it_o have_v against_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o west_n and_o east_n and_o 899._o the_o schism_n of_o photius_n as_o by_o reason_n of_o intestine_a and_o implacable_a war_n which_o have_v begin_v then_o to_o be_v form_v within_o the_o very_a bosom_n of_o that_o church_n that_o this_o age_n be_v the_o most_o deplorable_a and_o dismal_a above_o all_o the_o rest_n because_o those_o who_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v watchful_a in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n not_o only_o sleep_v profound_o but_o the_o very_a same_o person_n labour_v all_o they_o can_v entire_o to_o drown_v the_o apostolick-ship_n for_o the_o ten_o as_o there_o be_v very_o few_o person_n but_o will_v acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v bury_v in_o darkness_n more_o gross_a than_o that_o of_o egypt_n so_o it_o will_v be_v needless_a here_o to_o produce_v the_o proof_n the_o eleven_o be_v scarce_o happy_a and_o baronius_n begin_v the_o history_n of_o it_o with_o a_o remark_n of_o so_o universal_a a_o corruption_n of_o manner_n chief_o among_o the_o churchman_n that_o it_o have_v make_v way_n say_v he_o for_o the_o common_a beleif_n of_o the_o near_a approach_n of_o antichrist_n and_o of_o the_o end_n 1001._o of_o the_o world_n how_o can_v it_o be_v possible_a that_o during_o such_o gloomy_a time_n religion_n faith_n and_o worship_n shall_v be_v preserve_v without_o any_o alteration_n saint_n paul_n have_v join_v together_o faith_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n as_o two_o thing_n that_o mutual_o sustain_v one_o another_o 1._o and_o have_v take_v notice_n that_o those_o who_o cast_v off_o a_o good_a conscience_n make_v shipwreck_n of_o the_o faith_n in_o effect_n say_v saint_n chrysostome_n then_o when_o man_n lead_v corrupt_v life_n it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v keep_v 5._o themselves_o from_o fall_v into_o perverse_a doctrine_n 8._o to_o these_o consideration_n we_o may_v join_v that_o of_o the_o two_o sort_n of_o philosophy_n which_o successive_o have_v reign_v in_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n that_o of_o plato_n and_o the_o other_o of_o aristotle_n to_o who_o principle_n they_o have_v strive_v to_o accommodate_v the_o christian_a religion_n for_o it_o be_v scarce_o to_o be_v conceive_v but_o that_o mixture_n of_o platonic_a and_o peripatetic_a opinion_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v have_v deface_v the_o faith_n and_o quite_o alter_v his_o true_a worship_n it_o be_v for_o this_o
reason_n that_o saint_n paul_n have_v caution_v the_o faithful_a to_o 2._o take_v heed_n that_o no_o one_o seduce_v they_o through_o philosophy_n and_o vain_a deceitful_a reason_n after_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n after_o the_o rudiment_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n and_o not_o after_o jesus_n christ_n 9_o they_o will_v say_v without_o doubt_n that_o all_o these_o consideration_n how_o strong_a soever_o they_o appear_v do_v yet_o make_v no_o more_o than_o conjecture_n and_o likelihood_n which_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v immediate_o stifle_v by_o the_o only_a name_n of_o the_o church_n which_o improve_v so_o profound_a a_o respect_n for_o itself_o in_o the_o soul_n of_o all_o true_a beleiver_n but_o that_o very_a thing_n serve_v but_o to_o increase_v the_o just_a suspicion_n of_o our_o father_n they_o understand_v what_o respect_n they_o owe_v to_o the_o church_n but_o they_o be_v not_o also_o ignorant_a how_o easy_a it_o be_v to_o be_v deceive_v by_o so_o specious_a a_o name_n that_o visible_a society_n of_o man_n who_o profess_v christianity_n which_o we_o call_v the_o church_n be_v not_o whole_o compose_v of_o true_a believer_n it_o take_v into_o its_o bosom_n a_o great_a number_n of_o false_a christian_n of_o wicked_a worldly_a and_o hypocritical_a man_n who_o be_v mingle_v with_o the_o good_a as_o chaff_n among_o the_o wheat_n or_o as_o the_o mud_n of_o the_o stream_n be_v with_o the_o water_n of_o the_o fountain_n and_o as_o on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o false_a christian_n be_v not_o all_o so_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n for_o some_o be_v full_a of_o light_n and_o knowledge_n other_o of_o ignorance_n some_o be_v profane_a other_o superstitious_a one_o sort_n be_v full_a of_o contrivance_n and_o intrigue_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o religion_n other_o take_v little_a care_n of_o its_o interest_n some_o be_v ambitious_a other_o covetous_a other_o fierce_a and_o inflexible_a other_o full_a of_o imposture_n and_o deceit_n according_a as_o we_o see_v those_o different_a humour_n ordinary_o reign_v among_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o true_a beleiver_n who_o be_v in_o the_o same_o visible_a society_n have_v not_o all_o of_o they_o the_o same_o degree_n either_o of_o knowledge_n or_o sanctification_n that_o they_o have_v more_o or_o less_o of_o natural_a light_n more_o or_o less_o of_o supernatural_a grace_n more_o or_o less_o of_o zeal_n of_o courage_n or_o of_o vigour_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v communicate_v to_o they_o it_o be_v now_o almost_o scarce_o conceivable_a that_o that_o medley_n shall_v not_o corrupt_v religion_n in_o a_o long_a train_n of_o age_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o cause_v to_o enter_v in_o maxim_n doctrine_n service_n and_o custom_n far_o more_o conformable_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o world_n then_o to_o that_o of_o jesus_n christ_n there_o need_v but_o a_o little_a leven_a say_v saint_n paul_n to_o 5._o corrupt_v the_o whole_a mass_n from_o thence_o that_o two_o party_n whereof_o the_o one_o be_v good_a the_o other_o be_v evil_a be_v join_v together_o experience_n always_o instruct_v we_o that_o the_o ill_n do_v far_o more_o easy_o deprave_v the_o good_a than_o the_o good_a better_o the_o bad_a and_o we_o can_v say_v that_o god_n be_v bind_v to_o hinder_v that_o corruption_n and_o that_o otherwise_o his_o church_n will_v perish_v from_o the_o earth_n for_o beside_o that_o it_o no_o way_n belong_v to_o we_o to_o order_v so_o bold_o what_o god_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v or_o not_o to_o do_v for_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o design_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o have_v not_o hinder_v it_o as_o we_o have_v but_o just_a before_o see_v in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n nor_o in_o the_o eastern_a christian_a church_n nor_o in_o the_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o arian_n he_o have_v other_o way_n to_o preserve_v his_o elect_n and_o his_o sincere_o faithful_a one_o who_o only_o be_v to_o speak_v proper_o his_o church_n he_o can_v preserve_v they_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o corrupt_a ministry_n and_o when_o that_o be_v become_v impossible_a he_o know_v how_o to_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o wicked_a and_o to_o draw_v they_o away_o from_o their_o communion_n but_o we_o will_v speak_v to_o that_o more_o large_o at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o treatise_n 10._o to_o go_v on_o with_o our_o remark_n that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v supply_v we_o with_o another_o which_o be_v not_o less_o considerable_a than_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v in_o consequence_n of_o that_o mixture_n of_o the_o good_a and_o the_o wicked_a in_o the_o same_o visible_a church_n that_o it_o may_v fall_v out_o and_o it_o have_v very_o frequent_o happen_v that_o the_o far_o great_a number_n the_o external_a splendour_n force_n and_o authority_n be_v find_v among_o the_o party_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o that_o they_o be_v chief_o those_o who_o fill_v up_o the_o high_a place_n in_o the_o church_n for_o as_o those_o high_a place_n yield_v they_o honour_n and_o the_o good_n of_o the_o world_n in_o a_o very_a great_a measure_n so_o it_o be_v very_o natural_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v more_o hunt_v after_o and_o obtain_v by_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n then_o by_o the_o true_o faithful_a who_o ordinary_o be_v not_o so_o violent_o carry_v out_o to_o those_o thing_n after_o that_o manner_n one_o may_v very_o often_o see_v the_o government_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n to_o fall_v into_o exceed_o wicked_a hand_n and_o then_o there_o need_v but_o a_o capricious_a humour_n but_o a_o passion_n but_o a_o interest_n but_o a_o whimsy_n but_o some_o neglect_n or_o some_o other_o thing_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n which_o it_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o conceive_v to_o be_v in_o such_o person_n as_o we_o suppose_v to_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n false_a doctrine_n and_o false_a worship_n to_o which_o those_o of_o the_o best_a mind_n shall_v no_o soon_o oppose_v themselves_o but_o they_o shall_v be_v immediate_o quell_v which_o often_o force_v they_o to_o keep_v silence_n and_o to_o give_v way_n for_o a_o season_n till_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o deliver_v they_o from_o that_o oppression_n 11._o can_v it_o not_o in_o the_o least_o happen_v that_o those_o error_n and_o superstition_n that_o be_v but_o little_o take_v notice_n of_o at_o first_o spring_v up_o in_o the_o school_n or_o among_o some_o other_o sort_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v by_o little_a and_o little_a and_o insensible_o spread_v over_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o ignorance_n and_o negligence_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o may_v not_o the_o same_o thing_n fall_v out_o according_a to_o the_o pleasure_n and_o interest_n that_o the_o pastor_n may_v take_v to_o see_v they_o establish_v that_o in_o the_o end_n be_v find_v to_o be_v root_v in_o man_n mind_n and_o as_o i_o may_v so_o say_v incorporate_v into_o religion_n they_o may_v be_v look_v upon_o as_o tradition_n or_o as_o custom_n that_o for_o the_o future_a aught_o to_o be_v observe_v as_o law_n no_o one_o can_v deny_v that_o a_o multitude_n of_o thing_n have_v creep_v after_o that_o manner_n into_o the_o latin_a church_n as_o the_o keep_n back_o the_o cup_n which_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n have_v take_v 13._o up_o in_o express_a term_n as_o a_o custom_n that_o have_v be_v say_v it_o rational_o introduce_v and_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v keep_v as_o a_o law_n it_o be_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o the_o celibacy_n of_o priest_n the_o worship_v of_o image_n the_o distinction_n of_o meat_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n which_o how_o particular_a and_o private_a soever_o they_o be_v at_o first_o come_v after_o to_o be_v make_v public_a and_o in_o the_o end_n to_o be_v change_v into_o article_n of_o religion_n 12._o all_o these_o reflection_n may_v serve_v to_o let_v our_o father_n understand_v that_o it_o be_v no_o way_n impossible_a for_o the_o state_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n to_o be_v corrupt_v but_o beside_o that_o reason_n those_o example_n and_o that_o experience_n which_o convince_v they_o of_o it_o they_o yet_o far_a see_v the_o plain_a proof_n of_o it_o in_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o after_o whatsoever_o manner_n they_o expound_v that_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n of_o which_o saint_n paul_n speak_v to_o the_o thessalonian_n which_o in_o his_o day_n have_v begin_v to_o work_v and_o that_o captivity_n of_o god_n people_n 18._o who_o god_n command_v to_o go_v out_o of_o babylon_n lest_o in_o partake_v of_o its_o sin_n it_o partake_v also_o of_o its_o plague_n no_o one_o can_v avoid_v acknowledge_v from_o those_o two_o place_n but_o that_o a_o great_a corruption_n must_v needs_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n the_o
if_o you_o will_v give_v to_o the_o simple_a sort_n to_o those_o babe_n for_o example_n whereof_o jesus_n christ_n speak_v that_o his_o mystery_n have_v be_v reveal_v unto_o they_o if_o you_o give_v they_o i_o say_v that_o right_a and_o liberty_n to_o judge_v of_o that_o important_a and_o fundamental_a question_n to_o wit_n whether_o the_o call_v of_o a_o man_n be_v extraordinary_a and_o divine_a or_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o so_o whether_o his_o miracle_n be_v those_o of_o a_o true_a minister_n of_o god_n or_o of_o a_o false_a prophet_n whether_o it_o be_v a_o true_a angel_n of_o light_n or_o a_o disguise_a angel_n of_o darkness_n and_o to_o judge_v of_o all_o those_o thing_n after_o the_o church_n and_o against_o the_o church_n i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v refuse_v they_o the_o right_n and_o liberty_n of_o judge_v also_o of_o its_o doctrine_n and_o the_o point_n of_o religion_n whereof_o the_o true_a knowledge_n be_v by_o nothing_o near_o so_o difficult_a god_n have_v forewarn_v his_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o give_v themselves_o over_o to_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o first_o appearance_n of_o miracle_n and_o he_o have_v appoint_v that_o they_o shall_v judge_v of_o they_o by_o the_o doctrine_n they_o accompany_v whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o discern_a of_o miracle_n and_o judge_v of_o that_o doctrine_n be_v two_o inseparable_a thing_n and_o that_o their_o right_n belong_v to_o the_o same_o person_n if_o there_o arise_v say_v god_n among_o you_o a_o prophet_n or_o a_o dreamer_n of_o dream_n and_o give_v thou_o a_o sign_n or_o a_o wonder_n and_o the_o sign_n or_o the_o wonder_n come_v to_o pass_v whereof_o he_o speak_v unto_o thou_o say_v let_v we_o go_v after_o other_o god_n which_o thou_o have_v not_o know_v and_o let_v we_o serve_v they_o thou_o shall_v not_o hearken_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o that_o prophet_n or_o that_o dreamer_n of_o dream_n for_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n prove_v you_o to_o know_v whether_o you_o love_v the_o lord_n your_o god_n with_o all_o your_o heart_n it_o appear_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o way_n for_o man_n to_o judge_v well_o of_o miracle_n be_v to_o examine_v the_o doctrine_n of_o he_o that_o work_v they_o so_o that_o if_o they_o will_v a_o gree_n to_o give_v the_o people_n a_o right_a to_o discern_v miracle_n they_o can_v take_v away_o from_o they_o that_o of_o discern_v that_o doctrine_n they_o uphold_v jesus_n christ_n suppose_v the_o same_o thing_n when_o he_o say_v that_o there_o shall_v arise_v false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v work_v great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n to_o seduce_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o very_a elect._n for_o how_o can_v they_o otherwise_o discern_v those_o miracle_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n but_o by_o examine_v their_o word_n so_o a_o famous_a man_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n have_v not_o scruple_v to_o write_v that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o reject_v miracle_n and_o those_o man_n who_o make_v use_v of_o they_o than_o when_o they_o be_v join_v with_o a_o doctrine_n which_o the_o church_n have_v condemn_v his_o word_n be_v considerable_a and_o very_o well_o deserve_v to_o be_v transcribe_v the_o application_n say_v he_o royal._n and_o direction_n of_o a_o miracle_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o a_o doctrine_n be_v a_o enterprise_n so_o rash_a and_o so_o scandalous_a that_o it_o deserve_v to_o be_v punish_v there_o be_v not_o any_o catholic_a in_o the_o world_n who_o know_v his_o creed_n and_o understand_v it_o that_o can_v be_v capable_a of_o such_o a_o persuasion_n what_o if_o the_o appearance_n of_o a_o miracle_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n can_v any_o one_o hesitate_n or_o doubt_n whether_o it_o will_v be_v better_a to_o adhere_v to_o the_o church_n support_v by_o the_o truth_n of_o a_o miracle_n or_o to_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o a_o miracle_n found_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n saint_n peter_n have_v teach_v we_o a_o great_a while_n since_o what_o we_o be_v to_o do_v on_o that_o occasion_n he_o have_v be_v a_o eye_n witness_v of_o the_o transfiguration_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o of_o that_o glory_n that_o lie_v hide_v under_o the_o veil_n of_o a_o suffer_a and_o mortal_a state_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o he_o trust_v more_o in_o the_o obscurity_n of_o prophet_n than_o to_o the_o clear_a and_o manifest_a experience_n of_o his_o eye_n we_o have_v a_o more_o sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o nothing_o less_o than_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n break_v in_o piece_n all_o those_o reason_n that_o oppose_v it_o and_o we_o ought_v to_o take_v to_o ourselves_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o church_n that_o which_o saint_n peter_n say_v with_o respect_n to_o the_o prophet_n to_o which_o we_o do_v well_o that_o we_o take_v heed_n gather_v together_o all_o our_o attention_n to_o know_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n and_o turn_v aside_o from_o all_o the_o miracle_n and_o all_o those_o reason_n the_o man_n propound_v to_o we_o to_o make_v we_o call_v into_o question_n that_o which_o we_o know_v the_o church_n to_o have_v determine_v we_o may_v see_v clear_o by_o that_o passage_n how_o far_o one_o may_v carry_v that_o principle_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o thought_n of_o those_o that_o admit_v of_o it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v even_o to_o make_v miracle_n themselves_o submit_v to_o it_o he_o say_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o collect_v all_o our_o attention_n to_o know_v the_o true_a sentiment_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o turn_v aside_o from_o all_o those_o miracle_n which_o will_v make_v we_o call_v into_o question_n that_o which_o the_o church_n have_v determine_v he_o say_v that_o to_o go_v about_o to_o make_v use_n of_o miracle_n for_o the_o prove_v of_o a_o doctrine_n that_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o church_n be_v a_o rash_a and_o scandalous_a enterprise_n and_o such_o as_o deserve_v to_o be_v punish_v in_o effect_n if_o they_o suppose_v that_o maxim_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v to_o the_o church_n a_o absolute_a obedience_n to_o see_v with_o her_o eye_n and_o to_o rest_v upon_o her_o conduct_n those_o miracle_n can_v not_o make_v they_o be_v hear_v who_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v condemn_v and_o by_o which_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v look_v on_o as_o false_a miracle_n the_o consequence_n be_v good_a and_o just_a but_o because_o that_o very_a thing_n apply_v to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o rise_v of_o christianity_n justify_v the_o unbeleiver_n condemn_v the_o proceed_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n accuse_v those_o of_o rashness_n who_o have_v believe_v on_o their_o preach_n destroy_v the_o gospel_n and_o overthrow_v the_o christian_a church_n it_o be_v a_o manifest_a proof_n that_o that_o maxim_n itself_o be_v false_a and_o rash_a since_o those_o consequence_n that_o arise_v from_o it_o be_v so_o detestable_a that_o they_o leave_v neither_o to_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o to_o the_o apostle_n any_o way_n to_o make_v their_o gospel_n to_o be_v hear_v by_o man_n with_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o the_o care_n of_o their_o salvation_n 8._o they_o must_v give_v i_o leave_v to_o speak_v a_o little_a earnest_o for_o the_o interest_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o more_o i_o consider_v these_o inevitable_a consequence_n of_o that_o maxim_n the_o more_o i_o be_o astonish_v if_o those_o first_o christian_n who_o have_v be_v jew_n can_v not_o hear_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n nor_o receive_v his_o miracle_n without_o violate_v of_o their_o duty_n towards_o the_o church_n that_o have_v condemn_v they_o what_o scruple_n may_v not_o all_o that_o cast_v into_o all_o the_o christian_n that_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o world_n for_o in_o fine_a we_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o that_o people_n our_o father_n be_v not_o convert_v but_o by_o their_o ministry_n if_o then_o we_o can_v see_v clear_o that_o they_o themselves_o have_v a_o right_a to_o be_v convert_v if_o they_o lay_v down_o on_o the_o contrary_a a_o principle_n which_o of_o right_a aught_o to_o have_v hinder_v their_o conversion_n where_o then_o be_v all_o we_o as_o many_o as_o we_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o the_o author_n of_o those_o prejudices_fw-la produce_v to_o make_v we_o divest_v ourselves_o of_o our_o own_o guidance_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o church_n that_o we_o shall_v see_v with_o her_o eye_n and_o tread_v in_o her_o step_n have_v as_o much_o place_n with_o the_o jew_n as_o they_o have_v with_o we_o they_o can_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o their_o church_n be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n none_o can_v dispute_v with_o they_o that_o eminent_a authority_n which_o have_v so_o many_o external_a mark_n to_o she_o belong_v the_o adoption_n the_o
we_o that_o we_o do_v not_o deceive_v ourselves_o in_o that_o particular_a choice_n that_o we_o make_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n to_o refer_v ourselves_o to_o she_o for_o we_o must_v in_o that_o choice_n rely_v on_o our_o own_o reason_n who_o shall_v secure_v we_o that_o the_o lie_v church_n herself_o do_v not_o deceeive_v herself_o in_o the_o discern_a that_o she_o make_v of_o the_o tenet_n of_o religion_n that_o church_n be_v compose_v of_o the_o people_n and_o prelate_n those_o people_n have_v not_o more_o light_a than_o other_o man_n and_o those_o prelate_n be_v not_o less_o subject_a than_o the_o other_o to_o that_o darkness_n of_o understanding_n to_o negligence_n to_o prejudices_fw-la to_o passion_n to_o a_o secret_a obstinacy_n in_o their_o opinion_n and_o beyond_o all_o that_o they_o have_v not_o a_o peculiar_a interest_n to_o favour_v man_n error_n and_o superstition_n to_o retain_v they_o the_o more_o easy_o in_o their_o obedience_n but_o those_o people_n and_o those_o prelate_n be_v a_o very_a great_a number_n what_o do_v that_o signify_v the_o heathen_n and_o their_o guide_n be_v yet_o a_o far_o great_a number_n than_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o fail_v not_o to_o deceive_v themselves_o they_o be_v say_v they_o rich_a and_o powerful_a and_o raise_v in_o dignity_n the_o heathen_n and_o the_o mahometan_n be_v not_o less_o they_o have_v external_a mark_n but_o who_o know_v whether_o those_o mark_n be_v good_a and_o whether_o they_o do_v not_o abuse_v themselves_o in_o the_o consequence_n they_o pretend_v to_o draw_v from_o they_o they_o assure_v you_o that_o they_o do_v not_o deceive_v themselves_o they_o condemn_v you_o if_o you_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o which_o they_o believe_v and_o they_o live_v as_o to_o themselves_o in_o a_o perfect_a peace_n of_o mind_n but_o the_o author_n of_o those_o prejudices_fw-la have_v teach_v we_o to_o answer_v that_o all_o those_o who_o compose_v other_o society_n appear_v to_o have_v the_o same_o assurance_n with_o we_o that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o truth_n they_o do_v not_o condemn_v the_o latin_n with_o less_o confidence_n than_o the_o latin_n condemn_v they_o with_o they_o be_v not_o less_o exempt_a from_o the_o fear_n of_o deceive_a themselves_o they_o live_v also_o in_o as_o great_a a_o 1._o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n that_o assurance_n also_o and_o that_o confidence_n that_o freedom_n from_o trouble_n and_o fear_n that_o peace_n and_o that_o tranquillity_n ground_v upon_o the_o belief_n that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_a way_n and_o that_o they_o walk_v after_o their_o light_n be_v mark_n so_o ambiguous_a and_o so_o deceitful_a that_o they_o may_v be_v find_v most_o frequent_o to_o be_v join_v infinite_o more_o frequent_o with_o error_n and_o the_o way_n of_o hell_n than_o with_o truth_n and_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n these_o be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o author_n of_o those_o prejudices_fw-la whereof_o we_o change_v only_o the_o application_n but_o say_v they_o yet_o far_o do_v you_o not_o believe_v that_o the_o latin_a prelate_n have_v a_o more_o clear_a light_n than_o you_o we_o can_v know_v any_o thing_n by_o that_o and_o they_o do_v not_o know_v anything_o themselves_o from_o thence_o since_o no_o person_n can_v make_v himself_o certain_a by_o his_o own_o light_n according_a to_o the_o author_n of_o prejudices_fw-la they_o may_v from_o thence_o methinks_v see_v of_o what_o nature_n that_o argument_n be_v but_o they_o will_v be_v more_o apt_a to_o be_v distaste_v with_o it_o if_o they_o will_v but_o consider_v that_o their_o principle_n tend_v to_o confound_v all_o religion_n and_o to_o render_v the_o very_a existence_n of_o a_o deity_n suspect_v for_o if_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o certainty_n in_o those_o judgement_n that_o we_o make_v by_o our_o own_o light_n why_o do_v we_o follow_v the_o christian_a religion_n more_o than_o the_o pagan_a or_o the_o mahometan_a be_v it_o because_o that_o the_o church_n have_v bid_v we_o do_v so_o this_o be_v but_o a_o very_a bad_a reason_n for_o the_o church_n will_v never_o tell_v we_o that_o its_o religion_n be_v bad_a when_o it_o will_v be_v so_o in_o effect_n there_o be_v no_o society_n whatsoever_o but_o will_v say_v that_o its_o religion_n be_v good_a and_o better_a than_o all_o other_o be_v it_o because_o our_o birth_n our_o education_n interest_n reputation_n or_o the_o the_o friendship_n that_o we_o have_v with_o some_o person_n or_o the_o law_n of_o the_o country_n wherein_o we_o be_v will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o embrace_v any_o other_o religion_n and_o suchlike_a motive_n that_o engage_v we_o these_o be_v yet_o but_o the_o very_o worst_a reason_n and_o those_o who_o be_v not_o christian_n but_o from_o thence_o though_o possible_o they_o may_v not_o be_v a_o small_a number_n may_v say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o such_o for_o if_o those_o very_a tie_n have_v be_v apply_v to_o paganism_n they_o will_v have_v be_v pagan_n as_o they_o be_v now_o christian_n how_o then_o ought_v we_o to_o be_v christian_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o shall_v be_v so_o from_o out_o of_o a_o love_n and_o approbation_n of_o that_o religion_n itself_o but_o that_o love_n and_o that_o approbation_n ought_v to_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o our_o own_o light_n and_o not_o of_o that_o of_o other_o man_n and_o our_o own_o light_a aught_o to_o dictate_v to_o we_o what_o be_v the_o religion_n of_o god_n and_o to_o make_v we_o approve_v of_o and_o love_v it_o under_o that_o quality_n shall_v we_o then_o have_v nothing_o of_o certainty_n in_o that_o matter_n shall_v we_o be_v always_o in_o doubt_n under_o a_o pretence_n that_o our_o light_n may_v deceive_v we_o and_o those_o admirable_a effect_n that_o religion_n produce_v in_o our_o soul_n that_o confidence_n quiet_a joy_n that_o tranquillity_n hope_v freedom_n from_o trouble_n and_o from_o fear_n will_v they_o be_v nothing_o but_o ambiguous_a and_o deceitful_a mark_n which_o be_v most_o frequent_o to_o be_v find_v more_o join_v with_o error_n and_o the_o way_n of_o hell_n then_o with_o the_o truth_n and_o way_n of_o salvation_n thither_o it_o be_v that_o that_o principle_n of_o the_o author_n of_o those_o prejudices_fw-la lead_v we_o beside_o how_o do_v we_o come_v to_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o god_n be_v it_o because_o the_o church_n tell_v we_o so_o that_o will_v be_v a_o very_a ill_a reason_n for_o we_o believe_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n but_o by_o the_o belief_n that_o we_o have_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n we_o believe_v it_o without_o doubt_n by_o the_o impression_n of_o a_o thousand_o character_n of_o the_o deity_n in_o our_o mind_n and_o on_o our_o heart_n that_o appearin_fw-mi the_o fabric_n of_o the_o world_n in_o his_o government_n or_o his_o order_n the_o affair_n of_o it_o and_o particular_o in_o man_n himself_o and_o in_o his_o most_o pure_a and_o most_o natural_a inclination_n our_o reason_n itself_o be_v a_o lively_a image_n of_o it_o but_o that_o impression_n be_v wrought_v but_o by_o our_o own_o eye_n which_o make_v we_o see_v a_o deity_n in_o thing_n it_o be_v not_o by_o other_o eye_n that_o we_o see_v it_o but_o by_o our_o own_o be_v it_o necessary_a then_o that_o we_o shall_v doubt_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o not_o must_v we_o never_o be_v certain_a because_o our_o eye_n deceive_v we_o sometime_o and_o because_o we_o be_v not_o infallible_a the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la will_v say_v without_o doubt_n that_o we_o urge_v his_o principle_n too_o far_o that_o he_o never_o pretend_v to_o show_v that_o we_o can_v not_o be_v assure_v by_o our_o own_o light_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o that_o the_o christian_a religion_n in_o opposition_n to_o that_o religion_n which_o the_o jew_n now_o profess_v or_o to_o all_o those_o fantastic_a religion_n that_o reign_v in_o the_o world_n and_o be_v the_o mere_a effect_n of_o the_o imposture_n and_o humour_n of_o man_n can_v but_o be_v the_o true_a religion_n that_o that_o discernment_n be_v not_o hard_a to_o be_v make_v the_o advantage_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n above_o all_o those_o other_o be_v most_o clear_a and_o manifest_a indeed_o so_o he_o have_v explain_v himself_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o his_o preface_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o will_v not_o hinder_v the_o examination_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n but_o when_o particular_a controversy_n that_o divide_v the_o divers_a sect_n of_o christian_n shall_v be_v treat_v of_o i_o may_v say_v then_o if_o i_o be_o not_o mistake_v that_o there_o be_v two_o part_n in_o his_o hypothesis_n that_o in_o the_o first_o he_o yield_v to_o every_o one_o a_o liberty_n to_o judge_n by_o his_o own_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n
and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o take_v away_o from_o they_o in_o that_o respect_n the_o certainty_n of_o their_o judgement_n but_o that_o in_o the_o second_o he_o take_v it_o from_o they_o over_o other_o particular_a matter_n but_o all_o that_o be_v but_o a_o artifice_n whereby_o he_o will_v prevent_v and_o elude_v if_o he_o can_v those_o just_a and_o natural_a consequence_n which_o he_o foresee_v may_v be_v draw_v from_o his_o principle_n for_o the_o very_a same_o reason_n which_o he_o propose_v to_o hinder_v we_o from_o the_o examine_v the_o particular_a point_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o very_a same_o ground_n upon_o which_o he_o build_v his_o conclusion_n have_v place_n also_o in_o the_o compare_v the_o christian_a religion_n with_o other_o religion_n so_o that_o one_o may_v say_v that_o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o design_n destroy_v the_o first_o and_o that_o he_o himself_o overthrow_v that_o that_o he_o have_v establish_v for_o tell_v i_o if_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o our_o judgement_n found_v upon_o this_o that_o we_o see_v that_o other_o deceive_v themselves_o by_o the_o darkness_n of_o our_o understanding_n by_o our_o prejudices_fw-la by_o our_o passion_n and_o by_o those_o secret_a attack_n that_o we_o have_v of_o our_o thought_n tell_v i_o if_o that_o have_v not_o place_n as_o well_o in_o the_o judgement_n that_o they_o make_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o that_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v alone_o from_o god_n and_o the_o only_a true_a one_o as_o in_o that_o that_o we_o make_v that_o their_o purgatory_n be_v but_o a_o imaginary_a fire_n that_o their_o transubstantiation_n be_v but_o a_o human_a invention_n and_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v no_o where_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v there_o no_o profane_a or_o atheistical_a person_n in_o the_o world_n be_v there_o no_o jew_n nor_o pagan_n nor_o mahometan_n as_o we_o be_v persuade_v that_o they_o deceive_v themselves_o so_o be_v they_o persuade_v that_o we_o deceive_v ourselves_o but_o may_v not_o they_o demand_v of_o we_o what_o assurance_n we_o have_v that_o the_o darkness_n of_o our_o understanding_n our_o prejudices_fw-la our_o passion_n or_o some_o other_o secret_a tie_n that_o lie_v upon_o our_o thought_n have_v no_o part_n in_o our_o persuasion_n what_o will_v the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la answer_n to_o they_o will_v he_o say_v that_o the_o advantage_n that_o the_o christian_a religion_n have_v over_o all_o other_o religion_n be_v most_o clear_a and_o manifest_v i_o may_v say_v to_o he_o the_o same_o that_o the_o advantage_n that_o the_o protestant_a religion_n have_v above_o the_o roman_a be_v most_o clear_a and_o manifest_a and_o in_o say_v so_o i_o shall_v affirm_v nothing_o whereof_o i_o be_o not_o well_o convince_v if_o he_o reply_v to_o i_o that_o i_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v so_o confident_a of_o my_o own_o light_n that_o that_o which_o appear_v to_o i_o to_o be_v most_o clear_a and_o manifest_a do_v not_o appear_v so_o to_o other_o that_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o mind_n prejudices_fw-la passion_n etc._n etc._n make_v man_n deceive_v themselves_o and_o that_o i_o have_v no_o assurance_n that_o i_o be_o not_o of_o that_o number_n the_o jew_n the_o mahometan_a the_o pagan_a the_o libertine_n the_o atheist_n who_o shall_v come_v behind_o he_o will_v exclaim_v as_o often_o as_o they_o shall_v have_v occasion_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n this_o be_v just_o what_o we_o have_v to_o say_v this_o author_n plead_v our_o cause_n admirable_o well_o after_o all_o that_o principle_n of_o the_o author_n of_o those_o prejudices_fw-la be_v so_o far_o from_o turn_v aside_o our_o father_n from_o examine_v by_o themselves_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o bind_v they_o to_o do_v it_o the_o more_o for_o be_v concern_v for_o their_o own_o salvation_n there_o be_v no_o person_n more_o intre_v than_o themselves_o and_o be_v so_o easy_o apt_a to_o deceive_v themselves_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o those_o opinion_n that_o they_o be_v enjoin_v to_o believe_v and_o of_o that_o worship_n which_o they_o be_v to_o practice_v they_o ought_v not_o natural_o to_o have_v trust_v any_o but_o themselves_o they_o may_v it_o be_v true_a deceive_v themselves_o but_o their_o prelate_n may_v deceive_v themselves_o as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o if_o in_o the_o church_n the_o people_n must_v refer_v themselves_o to_o their_o prelate_n and_o each_o of_o those_o prelate_n in_o particular_a must_v refer_v themselves_o to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n they_o will_v find_v that_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o will_v be_v cure_v and_o that_o that_o church_n to_o which_o they_o shall_v all_o refer_v themselves_o will_v be_v but_o a_o ens_fw-la rationis_fw-la as_o they_o speak_v in_o the_o school_n and_o a_o platonic_a idea_n prudence_n then_o bind_v our_o father_n to_o examine_v that_o which_o they_o shall_v know_v both_o from_o the_o imperfection_n of_o the_o mind_n or_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o from_o the_o example_n of_o those_o before_o they_o who_o fall_v into_o error_n together_o with_o the_o danger_n which_o man_n be_v in_o on_o the_o account_n of_o their_o prejudices_fw-la their_o passion_n and_o their_o interest_n all_o that_o can_v produce_v no_o other_o effect_n in_o they_o than_o to_o excite_v they_o to_o make_v a_o examination_n the_o most_o exact_o and_o diligent_o that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o do_v cleanse_v their_o heart_n from_o every_o evil_a thought_n and_o implore_v the_o grace_n and_o blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o they_o for_o they_o be_v assure_v that_o if_o they_o do_v the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n they_o 1_o shall_v know_v his_o true_a doctrine_n and_o that_o if_o any_o do_v lack_v wisdom_n &_o beg_v it_o of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v give_v it_o they_o since_o he_o give_v to_o all_o liberal_o and_o upbraid_v not_o those_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n 7._o those_o to_o who_o god_n grant_v that_o grace_n which_o enlighten_v the_o mind_n and_o open_v the_o heart_n do_v not_o only_o not_o deceive_v themselves_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o save_v doctrine_n and_o in_o the_o reject_v of_o those_o that_o be_v damnable_a but_o they_o have_v for_o that_o all_o the_o assurance_n that_o they_o can_v reasonable_o wish_v for_o for_o the_o truth_n make_v itself_o to_o be_v perceive_v by_o far_o other_o character_n than_o those_o of_o a_o disguise_a falsehood_n the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n the_o worship_v of_o image_n the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n the_o conceit_n of_o purgatory_n have_v never_o produce_v in_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o devout_a person_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o sweet_a joy_n that_o peace_n and_o that_o contentment_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o the_o protestant_n rejoice_v in_o when_o he_o call_v upon_o god_n alone_o when_o he_o worship_n he_o without_o image_n as_o he_o have_v command_v he_o when_o he_o adore_v jesus_n christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n and_o when_o he_o place_v his_o only_a confidence_n in_o his_o satisfaction_n and_o in_o his_o merit_n a_o deceive_a conscience_n may_v be_v sometime_o in_o security_n but_o that_o security_n be_v never_o enjoy_v like_o a_o true_a quiet_a it_o be_v the_o rest_n of_o a_o lethargy_n where_o a_o man_n feel_v no_o pain_n because_o he_o have_v no_o feel_n which_o be_v very_o different_a from_o that_o rest_n that_o give_v a_o perfect_a health_n beside_o that_o the_o security_n of_o a_o deceive_a conscience_n be_v not_o long_o continue_v inquietude_n return_v from_o time_n to_o time_n chief_o in_o the_o affection_n and_o at_o the_o time_n of_o death_n where_o that_o tranquillity_n that_o the_o true_a religion_n give_v be_v solid_a and_o well_o ground_v and_o display_v its_o virtue_n peculiar_o in_o the_o most_o grievous_a accident_n of_o our_o life_n and_o in_o the_o very_a agony_n of_o death_n itself_o such_o be_v those_o divine_a impression_n that_o david_n feel_v when_o he_o say_v the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v perfect_a convert_v the_o soul_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v sure_a make_v wise_a the_o simple_a the_o statute_n 19_o of_o the_o lord_n be_v right_a rejoice_v the_o heart_n his_o judgement_n be_v more_o desirable_a than_o gold_n and_o sweet_a than_o honey_n and_o elsewhere_o thy_o word_n have_v be_v sweet_a unto_o my_o taste_n yea_o sweet_a than_o honey_n to_o my_o 119._o mouth_n and_o yet_o further_o in_o another_o place_n the_o secret_a of_o the_o lord_n be_v with_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o and_o he_o will_v show_v they_o his_o covenant_n the_o 〈◊〉_d disciple_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n feel_v they_o when_o they_o say_v do_v not_o our_o heart_n burn_v within_o we_o while_o he_o talk_v with_o we_o by_o the_o way_n and_o while_o he_o open_v to_o we_o the_o
scripture_n and_o upon_o another_o occasion_n ●_o lord_n to_o who_o shall_v we_o go_v thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o we_o believe_v and_o be_v sure_a that_o thou_o be_v that_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n if_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v accustom_v 6._o to_o the_o read_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o will_v find_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o truth_n in_o a_o thousand_o place_n but_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o our_o controversy_n come_v from_o the_o neglect_n they_o have_v of_o that_o divine_a book_n and_o that_o neglect_v itself_o be_v one_o fruit_n of_o that_o excessive_a confidence_n they_o have_v in_o their_o guide_n the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o part._n a_o historical_a defence_n of_o the_o reformation_n against_o a_o book_n entitle_v just_o prejudices_fw-la against_o the_o calvinist_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o reformation_n chap._n i._n that_o our_o father_n can_v not_o expect_v a_o reformation_n either_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o from_o those_o of_o the_o prelate_n we_o may_v now_o methinks_v suppose_v it_o evident_a and_o prove_v that_o our_o father_n have_v a_o right_a and_o be_v bind_v to_o examine_v by_o themselves_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o not_o to_o refer_v themselves_o absolute_o to_o the_o conduct_n and_o authority_n of_o their_o prelate_n but_o from_o thence_o it_o manifest_o follow_v that_o they_o have_v a_o right_a to_o reform_v themselves_o for_o since_o they_o can_v examine_v only_o in_o order_n to_o discern_v the_o good_a from_o the_o bad_a and_o the_o true_a from_o the_o false_a who_o can_v doubt_v that_o they_o have_v a_o right_a to_o make_v that_o discernment_n will_v not_o also_o have_v have_v a_o right_a to_o reject_v that_o which_o they_o shall_v have_v find_v to_o have_v be_v contrary_a to_o or_o alienate_v from_o christianity_n which_o be_v precise_o that_o which_o be_v call_v reformation_n i_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o yet_o remain_v to_o be_v inquire_v into_o whether_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v reject_v be_v indeed_o error_n and_o superstiton_n as_o they_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v and_o whether_o they_o do_v not_o deceive_v themselves_o in_o the_o judgement_n that_o they_o make_v but_o who_o see_v it_o not_o necessary_a for_o the_o decide_n of_o that_o question_n to_o go_v to_o the_o bottom_n and_o to_o enter_v upon_o that_o discussion_n which_o our_o adversary_n will_v avoid_v from_o whence_o it_o may_v appear_v as_o i_o have_v say_v in_o the_o beginning_n that_o all_o that_o controversy_n which_o they_o raise_v against_o we_o about_o the_o call_v of_o our_o reformer_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o vain_a amusement_n and_o that_o to_o make_v a_o good_a judgement_n of_o that_o action_n of_o our_o father_n and_o to_o know_v whether_o it_o be_v just_a or_o unjust_a we_o ought_v always_o to_o come_v to_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o to_o those_o thing_n themselves_o which_o be_v reform_v for_o upon_o that_o the_o question_n do_v whole_o depend_v whether_o they_o do_v well_o or_o ill_o notwithstanding_o to_o show_v that_o we_o will_v forget_v nothing_o that_o may_v serve_v for_o our_o justification_n and_o that_o after_o the_o desire_n to_o please_v god_n we_o have_v not_o a_o great_a than_o that_o of_o approve_v ourselves_o to_o our_o countryman_n and_o in_o general_a to_o all_o man_n we_o shall_v not_o fail_v to_o make_v yet_o some_o particular_a reflection_n upon_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o reformation_n which_o will_v more_o and_o more_o confirm_v the_o right_n of_o our_o father_n and_o manifest_v the_o justice_n of_o their_o conduct_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n we_o shall_v answer_v to_o some_o objection_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la that_o shall_v be_v the_o business_n of_o this_o second_o part._n our_o first_o reflection_n shall_v be_v on_o that_o deplorable_a state_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n in_o respect_n of_o its_o prelate_n for_o its_o condition_n be_v such_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o hope_n of_o ever_o see_v a_o good_a reformation_n to_o spring_v up_o by_o their_o ministry_n in_o effect_n what_o can_v be_v expect_v from_o a_o body_n that_o have_v almost_o whole_o abandon_v the_o care_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n which_o be_v plunge_v in_o the_o intrigue_n and_o interest_n of_o the_o world_n which_o keep_v the_o people_n in_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o the_o most_o gross_a superstition_n and_o with_o which_o the_o whole_a body_n itself_o do_v entertain_v itself_o and_o be_v find_v to_o be_v possess_v by_o ambition_n by_o luxury_n and_o by_o covetousness_n and_o engage_v in_o the_o vile_a manner_n and_o live_v in_o almost_o a_o general_a opposition_n to_o overthrow_v of_o all_o discipline_n they_o will_v see_v then_o what_o a_o german_a bishop_n say_v in_o a_o book_n entitle_v onus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la who_o live_v and_o write_v in_o the_o year_n 1519._o that_o be_v to_o say_v 2._o near_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o reformation_n but_o one_o who_o be_v no_o way_n luther_n friend_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o his_o write_n i_o be_o afraid_a say_v he_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n touch_v the_o qualification_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v but_o very_o ill_o observe_v in_o these_o day_n or_o rather_o that_o we_o be_v fall_v into_o those_o time_n which_o he_o note_v when_o he_o say_v i_o know_v that_o after_o my_o departure_n ravenous_a wolf_n will_v come_v among_o you_o not_o spare_v the_o flock_n where_o may_v one_o see_v a_o good_a man_n choose_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n one_o approve_v by_o his_o work_n and_o his_o learning_n and_o any_o one_o who_o be_v not_o either_o a_o child_n or_o worldly_a or_o ignorant_a of_o spiritual_a thing_n the_o far_o great_a number_n come_v to_o the_o prelateship_n more_o by_o underhand_a canvassing_n and_o ill_a way_n then_o by_o election_n and_o lawful_a way_n that_o disorder_n which_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n set_v the_o church_n in_o danger_n of_o perish_v for_o solomon_n say_v there_o be_v one_o evil_n which_o i_o have_v see_v under_o the_o sun_n as_o a_o error_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o ruler_n when_o a_o fool_n be_v raise_v to_o high_a dignity_n it_o be_v therefore_o that_o i_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n ought_v to_o excel_v in_o learning_n to_o the_o end_n that_o by_o their_o instruction_n and_o their_o preach_v they_o may_v govern_v other_o profitable_o but_o alas_o what_o bishop_n have_v we_o now_o a_o day_n that_o preach_v or_o have_v any_o care_n of_o the_o soul_n commit_v to_o he_o there_o be_v beside_o that_o very_o few_o who_o be_v 3_o content_v with_o one_o spouse_n alone_o that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o one_o only_a church_n and_o who_o seek_v not_o to_o appropriate_v to_o themselves_o more_o dignity_n more_o prebend_n and_o what_o be_v yet_o more_o to_o be_v condemn_v more_o bishopric_n our_o bishop_n be_v feast_v at_o their_o own_o table_n then_o when_o they_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o altar_n they_o be_v unwise_a in_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n but_o they_o love_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n they_o be_v more_o intent_n on_o temporal_a affair_n say_v it_o may_v be_v that_o i_o suffer_v myself_o to_o be_v carry_v away_o by_o my_o passion_n and_o that_o all_o these_o clamourous_a accusation_n be_v but_o the_o effect_n of_o that_o engagement_n in_o which_o we_o all_o be_v set_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o to_o leave_v no_o ground_n for_o that_o suspicion_n beside_o what_o i_o have_v set_v down_o in_o general_a in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o my_o first_o part_n i_o will_v further_o produce_v here_o more_o particular_a testimony_n of_o that_o truth_n by_o apply_v they_o to_o the_o age_n of_o our_o father_n i_o will_v say_v nothing_o of_o my_o own_o head_n i_o will_v make_v their_o author_n that_o be_v not_o suspect_v by_o they_o to_o speak_v who_o passage_n i_o will_v faithful_o relate_v which_o they_o may_v see_v in_o the_o original_n if_o they_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n and_o as_o i_o hope_v that_o they_o will_v not_o lay_v to_o my_o charge_n what_o may_v appear_v to_o be_v too_o vehement_a in_o their_o expression_n so_o also_o i_o not_o do_v pretend_v to_o impute_v to_o the_o prelate_n of_o these_o day_n that_o which_o those_o author_n censure_v in_o those_o of_o the_o former_a time_n then_o on_o the_o work_n of_o jesus_n christ_n their_o body_n be_v adorn_v with_o gold_n and_o their_o soul_n defile_v with_o filth_n they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o meddle_v with_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o their_o glory_n lie_v in_o their_o scurrilous_a humour_n and_o carriage_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o catherine_n of_o
can_v tell_v how_o to_o pass_v so_o favourable_a a_o judgement_n error_n in_o religion_n have_v a_o far_o different_a character_n from_o those_o in_o philosophy_n and_o in_o religion_n itself_o those_o which_o always_o when_o they_o arrive_v vitiate_v the_o mind_n and_o heart_n be_v far_o more_o odious_a than_o those_o which_o do_v not_o deprave_v the_o mind_n and_o those_o which_o hinder_v all_o the_o save_a essicacy_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v infinite_o more_o so_o how_o much_o more_o when_o they_o be_v gather_v together_o to_o a_o exceed_a great_a number_n and_o mutual_o uphold_v and_o sustain_v one_o another_o not_o unlike_o those_o black_a cloud_n which_o in_o the_o most_o stormy_a day_n of_o winter_n join_v themselves_o one_o to_o another_o to_o make_v up_o but_o one_o general_a one_o and_o to_o deprive_v we_o of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n hitherto_o possible_o they_o will_v not_o contest_v any_o thing_n but_o if_o it_o be_v reasonable_a enough_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o quarrel_n make_v about_o those_o general_a proposition_n they_o ought_v not_o further_o to_o make_v any_o in_o this_o particular_a question_n if_o the_o action_n of_o our_o father_n be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n good_a and_o just_a since_o we_o suppose_v not_o only_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o reject_v and_o cause_v other_o to_o reject_v be_v error_n but_o also_o that_o they_o be_v capital_a error_n of_o that_o last_o sort_n which_o i_o speak_v of_o just_a before_o which_o one_o can_v look_v on_o without_o dread_n and_o amazement_n for_o it_o be_v upon_o that_o supposition_n that_o we_o defend_v our_o father_n and_o if_o they_o dispute_v it_o with_o we_o they_o ought_v to_o quit_v this_o dispute_n about_o form_n and_o to_o enter_v upon_o a_o discussion_n of_o the_o very_a foundation_n itself_o they_o may_v allege_v that_o they_o have_v a_o long_a continue_a possession_n in_o favour_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o our_o reformer_n oppose_v since_o they_o be_v find_v establish_v in_o the_o church_n many_o age_n ago_o and_o that_o as_o in_o a_o civil_a society_n the_o law_n forbid_v those_o to_o be_v molest_v who_o be_v in_o a_o long_a and_o ancient_a possession_n and_o to_o be_v bind_v to_o produce_v their_o first_o title_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n it_o shall_v be_v maintain_v that_o they_o be_v usurper_n so_o also_o our_o father_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v hear_v any_o further_a against_o the_o sentiment_n and_o custom_n which_o the_o time_n have_v in_o some_o sort_n consecrate_v and_o make_v venerable_a but_o this_o answer_n will_v be_v of_o no_o use_n to_o they_o for_o not_o to_o allege_v here_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o those_o opinion_n and_o practice_n be_v new_a enough_o as_o have_v be_v sufficient_o justify_v not_o to_o say_v that_o they_o have_v be_v public_o dispute_v and_o by_o consequence_n that_o that_o possession_n whereof_o they_o speak_v be_v not_o peaceable_a who_o know_v not_o that_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o prescribe_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o worship_n against_o the_o true_a religion_n since_o that_o religion_n be_v of_o god_n in_o all_o its_o part_n and_o that_o there_o be_v neither_o any_o time_n nor_o custom_n nor_o possession_n that_o can_v make_v a_o true_a thing_n of_o a_o false_a or_o a_o divine_a institution_n of_o a_o humane_a tradition_n or_o any_o virtue_n of_o a_o vice_n in_o a_o civil_a society_n law_n establish_v prescription_n with_o very_a good_a reason_n because_o without_o they_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o community_n which_o be_v the_o only_a end_n that_o those_o law_n propound_v to_o themselves_o can_v be_v well_o preserve_v but_o in_o a_o religious_a society_n the_o principal_a end_n be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o be_v two_o thing_n that_o be_v establish_v on_o certain_a perpetual_a and_o invariable_a foundation_n and_o by_o consequence_n have_v no_o respect_n to_o any_o long_a prepossession_n on_o the_o contrary_a side_n how_o ancient_a soever_o they_o may_v have_v be_v if_o religion_n be_v capable_a of_o any_o such_o prescription_n christianity_n will_v be_v bind_v to_o let_v paganism_n alone_o for_o how_o long_a time_n past_a have_v paganism_n be_v seat_v in_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o man_n saint_n paul_n himself_o acknowledge_v it_o in_o those_o very_a place_n wherein_o he_o exhort_v such_o to_o be_v convert_v turn_v you_o say_v he_o from_o these_o vanity_n unto_o the_o live_a god_n who_o make_v heaven_n 14._o and_o earth_n who_o in_o time_n past_o suffer_v all_o nation_n to_o walk_v in_o their_o own_o way_n and_o elsewhere_o god_n have_v wink_v at_o the_o time_n of_o ignorance_n command_v now_o all_o man_n every_o where_o to_o repent_v they_o can_v 17._o therefore_o bring_v any_o thing_n of_o prescription_n against_o we_o and_o it_o will_v always_o remain_v certain_a that_o if_o that_o which_o our_o father_n have_v say_v concern_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o their_o day_n be_v true_a as_o we_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v the_o reformation_n be_v a_o action_n good_a and_o just_a in_o itself_o and_o by_o consequence_n in_o that_o respect_n they_o can_v have_v nothing_o to_o say_v against_o their_o call_n to_o it_o but_o as_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o establish_v a_o lawful_a call_n to_o suppose_v that_o what_o be_v do_v be_v good_a in_o itself_o and_o as_o it_o be_v further_a necessary_a that_o the_o person_n that_o do_v it_o shall_v have_v right_a to_o do_v it_o it_o remain_v yet_o to_o be_v further_o inquire_v into_o whether_o our_o father_n have_v power_n to_o do_v what_o they_o do_v for_o how_o many_o action_n be_v there_o that_o be_v just_a in_o themselves_o which_o it_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o all_o the_o world_n to_o do_v and_o which_o then_o become_v unjust_a and_o ill_a when_o every_o one_o thrust_v himself_o in_o of_o his_o own_o authority_n without_o be_v lawful_o call_v it_o be_v not_o permit_v for_o example_n to_o all_o the_o world_n to_o punish_v the_o wicked_a although_o that_o punishment_n may_v be_v just_a it_o be_v not_o permit_v to_o all_o man_n to_o change_v public_a custom_n although_o those_o change_n shall_v be_v good_a and_o advantageous_a to_o the_o society_n we_o ought_v then_o to_o see_v what_o call_v our_o father_n have_v to_o reform_v themselves_o and_o other_o but_o this_o question_n will_v be_v easy_o decide_v if_o it_o be_v consider_v that_o in_o all_o society_n there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o common_a action_n the_o one_o fort_n of_o those_o that_o be_v so_o common_a as_o to_o belong_v to_o all_o the_o body_n take_v collective_a as_o they_o speak_v in_o the_o school_n and_o not_o to_o each_o particular_a person_n so_o in_o a_o parliament_n to_o pronounce_v a_o sentence_n to_o absolve_v a_o man_n or_o to_o condemn_v he_o they_o be_v the_o action_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o not_o of_o each_o of_o those_o who_o compose_v it_o so_o to_o declare_v war_n and_o to_o make_v peace_n be_v the_o act_n of_o he_o or_o those_o who_o hold_v all_o the_o right_n of_o the_o state_n in_o their_o hand_n but_o there_o be_v other_o action_n which_o be_v so_o common_a in_o a_o society_n as_o to_o belong_v to_o each_o particular_a person_n or_o as_o they_o say_v to_o all_o distributive_a and_o not_o to_o all_o collective_a so_o to_o give_v one_o advice_n in_o a_o assembly_n be_v the_o act_n not_o of_o the_o whole_a body_n but_o of_o each_o particular_a person_n who_o compose_v it_o and_o to_o live_v in_o a_o kingdom_n to_o contract_v alliance_n to_o possess_v one_o good_n to_o labour_v to_o defend_v one_o self_n against_o the_o incommodity_n of_o life_n be_v action_n so_o common_a as_o to_o belong_v to_o all_o particular_a person_n and_o so_o the_o civilian_n have_v very_o well_o distinguish_v in_o say_v that_o there_o be_v some_o act_n which_o respect_n omnes_fw-la ut_fw-la singulos_fw-la and_o that_o there_o be_v other_o which_o belong_v ad_fw-la omnes_fw-la ut_fw-la universos_fw-la to_o apply_v that_o distinction_n only_o to_o our_o present_a subject_n i_o say_v that_o in_o religious_a society_n which_o be_v the_o church_n faith_n piety_n holiness_n and_o by_o consequence_n the_o reject_v of_o error_n of_o false_a worship_n and_o of_o sin_n be_v those_o common_a action_n that_o belong_v to_o all_o private_a man_n the_o just_a life_n by_o his_o faith_n say_v the_o scripture_n and_o as_o it_o will_v be_v ridiculous_a to_o demand_v of_o any_o man_n in_o a_o civil_a society_n what_o personal_n call_v he_o have_v to_o live_v to_o labour_v to_o avoid_v that_o which_o will_v be_v hurtful_a to_o his_o life_n and_o to_o have_v a_o care_n of_o his_o own_o preservation_n so_o it_o be_v also_o a_o absurdity_n to_o demand_v of_o our_o father_n what_o call_v they_o have_v to_o believe_v aright_o in_o
they_o have_v abuse_v the_o conduct_n of_o the_o people_n in_o teach_v they_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v no_o proof_n for_o notwithstanding_o i_o see_v well_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la tell_v we_o how_o he_o understand_v we_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o believe_v thing_n upon_o this_o frivolous_a foundation_n that_o there_o may_v be_v some_o in_o the_o world_n able_a to_o prove_v they_o or_o that_o it_o may_v be_v there_o may_v be_v some_o to_o come_v hereafter_o to_o do_v it_o this_o be_v the_o faith_n which_o he_o wish_v that_o the_o magistrate_n and_o people_n of_o zurich_n will_v have_v have_v for_o the_o hinder_v their_o reformation_n he_o will_v have_v have_v they_o imagine_v that_o although_o they_o shall_v have_v see_v nothing_o that_o shall_v have_v persuade_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n and_o that_o of_o relic_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o other_o point_n that_o be_v in_o controversy_n yet_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v cease_v from_o believe_v they_o with_o a_o divine_a faith_n and_o to_o have_v devout_o practise_v they_o because_o there_o may_v have_v be_v possible_o some_o man_n in_o the_o world_n ready_a enough_o to_o prove_v they_o or_o that_o if_o there_o be_v none_o then_o there_o may_v have_v some_o arise_v afterward_o to_o have_v do_v it_o by_o this_o principle_n the_o jew_n and_o heathen_n may_v yet_o at_o this_o day_n accuse_v all_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o first_o christian_n of_o rashness_n 10._o object_n the_o calvinist_n can_v deny_v that_o their_o pretend_a reformation_n be_v not_o establish_v on_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o that_o the_o 248._o burgermaster_n of_o zurich_n be_v not_o persuade_v of_o falsehood_n since_o they_o immediate_o reject_v divers_a thing_n which_o zuinglius_fw-la have_v maintain_v there_o with_o as_o much_o obstinaecy_n as_o those_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v yet_o common_a with_o he_o he_o lay_v down_o also_o some_o proposition_n manifest_o contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n without_o take_v any_o pain_n to_o explain_v they_o answ_n when_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la will_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o consider_v well_o the_o sense_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o we_o he_o will_v find_v a_o perfect_a agreement_n zuinglius_fw-la deny_v the_o intercession_n of_o the_o saint_n we_o do_v no_o less_o in_o the_o sense_n wherein_o they_o understand_v the_o word_n intercession_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o saint_n intercede_v for_o we_o as_o true_a mediator_n we_o deny_v not_o that_o the_o saint_n pray_v in_o general_a for_o the_o church_n a_o prayer_n of_o charity_n and_o communion_n zuinglius_fw-la deny_v it_o no_o more_o than_o we_o zuinglius_fw-la deny_v that_o it_o be_v allowable_a to_o make_v image_n for_o the_o use_n of_o religion_n we_o deny_v it_o with_o he_o we_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v indifferent_a to_o make_v they_o for_o a_o civil_a use_n zuinglius_fw-la never_o say_a the_o contrary_n zuinglius_fw-la say_fw-la that_o the_o true_a way_n not_o to_o err_v be_v to_o cleave_v whole_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o say_v so_o also_o he_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o be_v give_v we_o for_o the_o pattern_n of_o our_o life_n and_o not_o the_o saint_n but_o he_o mean_v it_o of_o a_o first_o and_o perfect_a pattern_n and_o so_o he_o explain_v himself_o when_o he_o add_v these_o word_n capitis_fw-la enim_fw-la est_fw-la nos_fw-la deducere_fw-la non_fw-la membrorum_fw-la it_o belong_v to_o the_o head_n to_o guide_v we_o and_o not_o to_o the_o member_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o that_o contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n 11._o object_n zuinglius_fw-la to_o gain_v the_o burgermaster_n to_o his_o side_n have_v 255._o the_o art_n to_o pick_v out_o certain_a vulgar_a reason_n and_o very_o well_o sit_v to_o the_o understand_n of_o the_o swisser_n he_o declaim_v fierce_o against_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v forbid_v the_o priest_n marriage_n he_o high_o exaggerated_a the_o rigidness_n of_o the_o command_n of_o the_o church_n which_o enjoin_v abstinence_n from_o meat_n which_o he_o attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n only_a answ_n those_o vulgar_a reason_n be_v nevertheless_o very_o pertinent_a reason_n for_o they_o make_v they_o see_v that_o the_o prelate_n have_v usurp_v a_o tyrannical_a domination_n over_o their_o conscience_n and_o that_o they_o exercise_v it_o after_o the_o most_o scandalous_a manner_n in_o the_o world_n enjoin_v a_o caelibacy_n that_o fill_v the_o church_n with_o beastliness_n and_o impurity_n and_o forbid_v the_o use_n of_o meat_n on_o certain_a day_n which_o they_o abstain_v not_o from_o themselves_o for_o the_o rest_n those_o injurious_a discourse_n against_o a_o whole_a nation_n which_o have_v always_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o virtue_n and_o glory_n be_v not_o methinks_v within_o the_o rule_n of_o christian_a charity_n nor_o even_o within_o those_o of_o civil_a honesty_n if_o the_o swisser_n have_v not_o natural_o as_o florid_n a_o wit_n as_o some_o other_o nation_n have_v they_o have_v a_o solid_a right_o judicious_a laborious_a constant_a faithful_n sincere_a mind_n which_o be_v quality_n far_o more_o estimable_a than_o those_o which_o usual_o accompany_v that_o which_o they_o call_v the_o heat_n of_o imagination_n 12._o object_n zuinglius_fw-la answer_v to_o a_o reason_n of_o the_o chancel_n ur_fw-la of_o zurich_n after_o a_o very_a false_a and_o sophistical_a manner_n at_o the_o foundation_n 257._o but_o proper_a enough_o to_o confound_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o swisser_n he_o accuse_v the_o chancellor_n of_o ignorance_n in_o that_o he_o take_v he_o say_v these_o word_n the_o field_n we_o the_o world_n for_o a_o parable_n whereas_o they_o be_v only_o a_o explication_n of_o the_o parable_n and_o not_o the_o parable_n itself_o but_o the_o chancellor_n will_v have_v say_v no_o more_o but_o this_o that_o these_o word_n the_o seed_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v not_o be_v take_v according_a to_o the_o letter_n since_o they_o be_v the_o explication_n of_o a_o parable_n to_o which_o they_o have_v reference_n therefore_o zuinglius_fw-la take_v great_a heed_n how_o he_o answer_v and_o he_o be_v force_v to_o save_v himself_o by_o a_o trick_n in_o give_v the_o word_n a_o change_n for_o there_o be_v no_o body_n who_o see_v not_o that_o what_o the_o chancellor_n say_v be_v indisputable_a and_o that_o those_o word_n the_o seed_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o explication_n of_o a_o parable_n can_v not_o be_v take_v in_o the_o letter_n but_o that_o it_o be_v as_o if_o jesus_n christ_n have_v say_v when_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o seed_n in_o this_o parable_n i_o mean_v by_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v no_o explication_n of_o any_o parable_n and_o not_o be_v accompany_v with_o any_o circumstance_n that_o shall_v oblige_v we_o not_o to_o take_v they_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o ridicul_n we_o then_o to_o compare_v they_o with_o the_o expression_n that_o explain_v parable_n answ_n this_o be_v no_o great_a subtlety_n from_o a_o man_n who_o talk_v of_o nothing_o but_o a_o gross_a and_o suitz_n understanding_n as_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v literal_o those_o word_n which_o explain_v a_o parable_n so_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v literal_o those_o word_n which_o explain_v a_o sacrament_n for_o in_o this_o respect_n a_o sacrament_n be_v as_o a_o visible_a parable_n since_o it_o be_v a_o visible_a sign_n that_o represent_v a_o invisible_a grace_n the_o reason_n for_o which_o we_o ought_v not_o literal_o to_o take_v those_o word_n that_o explain_v a_o parable_n be_v because_o we_o see_v the_o matter_n treat_v of_o there_o be_v one_o thing_n that_o represent_v another_o and_o which_o by_o consequence_n can_v be_v that_o other_o thing_n substantial_o and_o real_o and_o the_o whole_a reason_n for_o which_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v literal_o the_o word_n that_o explain_v a_o sacrament_n be_v because_o we_o see_v the_o matter_n treat_v of_o there_o be_v one_o thing_n which_o signify_v another_o and_o which_o by_o consequence_n can_v be_v that_o thing_n substantial_o and_o real_o so_o that_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o those_o the_o seed_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v alike_o and_o if_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v the_o latter_a literal_o because_o they_o be_v the_o explication_n of_o a_o parable_n we_o ought_v not_o also_o to_o take_v the_o other_o literal_o because_o they_o be_v the_o explication_n of_o a_o sacrament_n these_o be_v the_o principal_a objection_n of_o the_o ten_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o prejudices_fw-la except_v one_o which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o manner_n wherein_o they_o form_v our_o first_o assembly_n at_o paris_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o the_o election_n that_o they_o make_v there_o
letter_n of_o safe-conduct_a violate_v in_o the_o person_n of_o john_n husse_n and_o jerom_n of_o prague_n they_o cause_v in_o the_o end_n a_o write_v to_o be_v print_v contain_v all_o these_o reason_n and_o divers_a other_o too_o long_o to_o transcribe_v to_o justify_v themselves_o against_o the_o calumny_n of_o their_o adversary_n and_o they_o publish_v it_o not_o only_o in_o germany_n but_o in_o other_o foreign_a country_n also_o some_o time_n after_o the_o pope_n publish_v another_o bull_n by_o which_o he_o prolong_v the_o hold_v of_o the_o council_n under_o a_o pretence_n that_o he_o can_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o duke_n of_o mantua_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o assign_v it_o at_o vicenza_n notwithstanding_o the_o prosecution_n continue_v always_o against_o the_o protestant_n every_o where_o where_o the_o pope_n have_v any_o authority_n in_o germany_n the_o imperial_a chamber_n commit_v a_o thousand_o injustice_n and_o outrage_n against_o they_o in_o france_n the_o flame_n be_v kindle_v in_o all_o the_o province_n and_o although_o henry_n the_o eight_o king_n of_o england_n have_v throw_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o rome_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o fail_v to_o appear_v a_o good_a catholic_n to_o put_v to_o death_n without_o mercy_n all_o those_o who_o have_v learn_v the_o new_a religion_n the_o same_o be_v do_v in_o scotland_n in_o flanders_n and_o in_o all_o the_o country_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n in_o the_o year_n 1539._o the_o pope_n publish_v a_o bull_n by_o which_o he_o suspend_v the_o convocation_n of_o a_o council_n indefinite_o until_o it_o shall_v be_v his_o good_a pleasure_n to_o have_v one_o hold_v and_o moreover_o there_o be_v hold_v in_o this_o same_o year_n a_o imperial_a diet_n at_o franckfort_n whither_o the_o emperor_n send_v the_o archbishop_n of_o london_n 247._o as_o his_o commissioner_n and_o decree_v with_o he_o that_o to_o labour_v to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o difference_n about_o religion_n he_o shall_v make_v a_o friendly_a conference_n between_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o well_o mean_v person_n both_o on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o on_o the_o other_o who_o without_o the_o intervention_n of_o the_o pope_n shall_v have_v nothing_o before_o their_o eye_n but_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o notwithstanding_o they_o shall_v let_v the_o protestant_n have_v peace_n for_o fifteen_o month_n under_o condition_n that_o be_v yet_o harsh_a enough_o to_o they_o but_o this_o resolution_n so_o high_o offend_v the_o pope_n that_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o news_n of_o it_o he_o dispatch_v away_o a_o nuntio_n to_o the_o emperor_n who_o be_v then_o in_o spain_n with_o order_n to_o complain_v and_o to_o hinder_v by_o all_o sort_n of_o way_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o authorise_v it_o by_o his_o consent_n the_o protestant_n have_v send_v thither_o on_o their_o part_n the_o emperor_n will_v not_o for_o that_o time_n declare_v himself_o but_o dismiss_v that_o business_n to_o another_o season_n after_o which_o he_o go_v into_o the_o low-countries_n to_o appease_v some_o popular_a sedition_n there_o and_o have_v there_o put_v the_o matter_n into_o debate_n because_o he_o be_v to_o give_v some_o answer_n cardinal_z farnese_n who_o be_v legate_n there_o before_o he_o oppose_v he_o with_o all_o his_o might_n remonstrate_v the_o inconvenience_n that_o may_v arise_v from_o such_o a_o conference_n and_o that_o he_o have_v far_o better_a refer_v the_o cause_n of_o religion_n to_o a_o council_n and_o notwithstanding_o to_o sortifie_v the_o catholic_n league_n to_o make_v the_o protestant_n submit_v by_o fair_a mean_n or_o foul_a against_o who_o he_o make_v a_o very_a long_a invective_n this_o counsel_n notwithstanding_o do_v not_o then_o please_v the_o emperor_n he_o appoint_v a_o diet_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o germany_n for_o the_o conference_n and_o he_o invite_v all_o the_o prince_n to_o come_v in_o person_n thither_o promise_v public_a safety_n to_o all_o which_o oblige_v the_o cardinal_n legate_n to_o retire_v in_o great_a discontent_n this_o cardinal_n in_o his_o return_n go_v into_o france_n and_o obtain_v of_o francis_n the_o first_o a_o edict_n against_o those_o who_o he_o call_v heretic_n and_o lutheran_n which_o be_v afterward_o publish_v and_o execute_v through_o his_o whole_a kingdom_n with_o extreme_a rigour_n the_o conference_n be_v first_o assign_v at_o haguenaw_n a_o little_a after_o at_o worm_n and_o the_o pope_n who_o fear_v the_o success_n think_v good_a to_o send_v thither_o his_o nuntio_n thomas_n campeius_n with_o paulus_n vergerius_n in_o who_o he_o repose_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o confidence_n but_o the_o policy_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v too_o averse_a to_o a_o accommodation_n to_o suffer_v that_o conference_n to_o proceed_v far_o the_o emperor_n therefore_o at_o the_o urgent_a solicitation_n of_o the_o pope_n break_v it_o off_o by_o express_a letter_n and_o refer_v it_o to_o a_o diet_n which_o he_o will_v have_v hold_v some_o time_n after_o at_o ratisbon_n the_o protestant_n see_v clear_o to_o what_o all_o these_o delay_n tend_v and_o yet_o nevertheless_o they_o do_v not_o fail_v to_o appear_v at_o ratisbon_n whither_o the_o emperor_n come_v in_o person_n and_o whither_o the_o pope_n have_v also_o send_v cardinal_n contarenus_n in_o the_o quality_n of_o his_o legate_n this_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1541._o moreover_o the_o emperor_n cause_v a_o book_n to_o be_v present_v on_o his_o part_n to_o the_o assembly_n which_o chief_o treat_v of_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o particular_o of_o those_o which_o be_v in_o controversy_n and_o he_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v his_o will_n that_o that_o book_n shall_v be_v examine_v and_o that_o it_o shall_v serve_v as_o the_o theme_n or_o subject_n of_o the_o conference_n for_o which_o he_o himself_o name_v the_o collocutor_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o both_o party_n who_o defer_v that_o nomination_n to_o he_o in_o this_o conference_n the_o collocutor_n agree_v upon_o some_o article_n and_o can_v not_o agree_v upon_o some_o other_o as_o upon_o those_o of_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o celibacy_n of_o priest_n the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n and_o the_o emperor_n have_v consult_v the_o legate_n about_o this_o to_o know_v of_o he_o what_o he_o shall_v do_v on_o this_o occasion_n the_o legate_n give_v he_o his_o answer_n in_o writing_n that_o after_o have_v see_v as_o well_o the_o article_n agree_v upon_o between_o the_o collocutor_n as_o the_o other_o which_o they_o can_v not_o come_v to_o agree_v about_o it_o be_v his_o judgement_n that_o he_o ought_v to_o ordain_v nothing_o about_o the_o rest_n but_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o refer_v all_o to_o the_o holy_a see_v which_o can_v in_o a_o general_n council_n or_o otherwise_o do_v that_o which_o it_o shall_v judge_v necessary_a for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o particular_a for_o that_o of_o germany_n the_o emperor_n take_v this_o answer_n as_o if_o the_o legate_n have_v consent_v that_o the_o article_n agree_v upon_o between_o the_o collocutor_n shall_v immediate_o be_v receive_v by_o both_o the_o party_n and_o he_o relate_v it_o to_o the_o assembly_n after_o that_o manner_n but_o there_o spring_v up_o a_o kind_n of_o division_n between_o the_o bishop_n of_o one_o side_n and_o the_o roman_n catholic_n prince_n on_o the_o other_o for_o the_o prince_n will_v that_o the_o article_n agree_v upon_o shall_v be_v receive_v and_o that_o the_o rest_n shall_v be_v refer_v either_o to_o a_o general_n or_o national_a council_n or_o at_o least_o to_o a_o general_n assembly_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o bishop_n on_o the_o contrary_a who_o see_v that_o this_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o a_o reformation_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o they_o shall_v reject_v those_o article_n agree_v upon_o wherein_o they_o say_v that_o the_o catholic_n collocutor_n have_v too_o much_o give_v way_n to_o the_o protestant_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v change_v nothing_o either_o in_o religion_n or_o its_o ceremony_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v refer_v all_o to_o a_o general_n or_o a_o national_a council_n this_o dispute_n therefore_o have_v so_o happen_v the_o legate_n fear_v lest_o they_o shall_v upon_o this_o meddle_n with_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n so_o that_o he_o open_o declare_v by_o another_o public_a write_n that_o he_o do_v not_o mean_a that_o they_o shall_v receive_v any_o article_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v absolute_o refer_v all_o as_o well_o the_o agree_v on_o as_o the_o other_o to_o his_o holiness_n for_o he_o to_o determine_v what_o he_o shall_v think_v fit_a he_o publish_v yet_o far_o another_o write_n by_o which_o he_o very_o much_o condemn_v as_o well_o the_o catholic_n prince_n as_o the_o bishop_n
not_o god_n his_o prophet_n and_o his_o altar_n yet_o among_o they_o lord_n say_v elias_n they_o have_v kill_v thy_o prophet_n and_o throw_v down_o thy_o altar_n and_o the_o hundred_o prophet_n of_o god_n that_o obadiah_n hide_v in_o two_o cave_n to_o withdraw_v they_o from_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o idolatress_n jezabel_n the_o altar_n of_o god_n that_o elias_n repair_v in_o carmel_n to_o sacrifice_v there_o by_o the_o miraculous_a fire_n that_o fall_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o consume_v the_o victim_n the_o call_n of_o elisha_n and_o micaiah_n and_o in_o a_o word_n the_o whole_a history_n of_o those_o schismatical_a ten_o tribe_n do_v it_o not_o evident_o note_v that_o god_n look_v on_o they_o as_o his_o true_a church_n in_o which_o there_o be_v yet_o a_o mean_n to_o be_v save_v we_o must_v not_o therefore_o abuse_v that_o which_o the_o father_n have_v write_v against_o schismatic_n in_o intend_v to_o aggravate_v their_o crime_n and_o to_o draw_v they_o from_o it_o nor_o must_v we_o take_v their_o expression_n in_o the_o whole_a rigour_n of_o the_o letter_n their_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o all_o those_o general_o who_o be_v find_v engage_v in_o a_o schismatical_a communion_n even_o down_o to_o tradesman_n and_o labourer_n who_o remain_v there_o with_o a_o upright_a heart_n and_o through_o the_o prejudice_n of_o their_o conscience_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o eternal_o damn_v but_o that_o the_o author_n and_o defender_n of_o schism_n who_o run_v into_o it_o through_o their_o personal_a interest_n or_o out_o of_o a_o spirit_n of_o fierceness_n pride_n and_o a_o hatred_n incompatible_a with_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n commit_v a_o horrible_a crime_n and_o that_o while_o they_o be_v in_o that_o state_n they_o remain_v deprive_v of_o all_o hope_n of_o salvation_n that_o if_o the_o father_n have_v say_v any_o thing_n more_o general_o and_o which_o can_v be_v thus_o restrain_v it_o be_v just_a to_o understand_v it_o in_o a_o comparative_a sense_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o set_v that_o schismatical_a party_n of_o the_o church_n in_o opposition_n to_o that_o which_o be_v not_o so_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n appear_v evident_o in_o this_o which_o it_o do_v not_o in_o the_o other_o where_o it_o be_v obscure_v by_o that_o schism_n the_o end_n of_o the_o three_o part._n a_o historical_a defence_n of_o the_o reformation_n against_o a_o book_n entitle_v just_o prejudices_fw-la against_o the_o calvinist_n the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o right_n that_o our_o father_n have_v to_o hold_v a_o christian_a society_n among_o themselves_o by_o public_a assembly_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o ministry_n chap._n i._n that_o our_o father_n have_v a_o right_a to_o have_v their_o church-assembly_n separate_v from_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n on_o the_o supposition_n that_o they_o be_v right_a in_o the_o foundation_n the_o order_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o this_o treatise_n require_v that_o we_o now_o go_v on_o to_o that_o separation_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la call_v positive_a and_o that_o after_o have_v confirm_v the_o right_n that_o our_o father_n have_v to_o examine_v the_o state_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n after_o our_o have_v show_v the_o indispensable_a necessity_n that_o lie_v upon_o they_o to_o forsake_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o live_v apart_o from_o her_o communion_n that_o we_o also_o establish_v the_o right_n that_o they_o have_v to_o set_v up_o a_o christian_a society_n among_o themselves_o notwithstanding_o their_o go_v off_o from_o the_o other_o party_n who_o be_v not_o for_o a_o reformation_n and_o to_o make_v up_o alone_o and_o apart_o a_o body_n of_o the_o church_n or_o a_o external_n and_o visible_a communion_n this_o be_v that_o which_o i_o pretend_v to_o establish_v in_o this_o four_o and_o last_o part_n and_o to_o that_o end_n i_o shall_v here_o treat_v of_o two_o thing_n the_o first_o shall_v respect_v the_o right_n of_o those_o public_a assembly_n and_o the_o second_o shall_v be_v concern_v that_o of_o the_o gospel_n ministry_n wherein_o our_o function_n lie_v howsoever_o these_o two_o thing_n have_v a_o dependence_n one_o upon_o another_o it_o will_v yet_o be_v well_o to_o treat_v of_o they_o with_o some_o distinction_n to_o make_v the_o first_o clear_a i_o shall_v first_o lay_v it_o down_o as_o a_o indisputable_a truth_n that_o the_o right_n of_o religious_a assembly_n natural_o follow_v that_o of_o society_n i_o mean_v that_o as_o far_o as_o a_o religious_a society_n be_v just_a and_o lawful_a so_o far_o the_o assembly_n that_o be_v therein_o make_v be_v just_a and_o lawful_a and_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a as_o far_o as_o a_o society_n be_v unjust_a and_o wicked_a so_o far_o its_o assembly_n be_v so_o too_o this_o principle_n be_v evident_a to_o common_a sense_n and_o it_o be_v for_o that_o reason_n that_o we_o condemn_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o heathen_n jew_n and_o mahometan_n as_o unlawful_a and_o criminal_a because_o their_o society_n be_v impious_a and_o wicked_a and_o that_o have_v no_o right_a to_o be_v unite_v to_o believe_v and_o practise_v those_o error_n which_o they_o believe_v and_o practice_n they_o have_v also_o no_o right_a to_o assemble_v themselves_o together_o in_o order_n to_o make_v a_o public_a profession_n it_o be_v for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o we_o hold_v on_o the_o contrary_a the_o christian_a assembly_n to_o be_v not_o only_o just_a and_o allowable_a but_o to_o be_v necessary_a and_o command_v by_o divine_a right_n because_o the_o christian_a society_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n be_v itself_o also_o of_o divine_a right_n it_o be_v then_o true_a that_o the_o right_n of_o assembly_n follow_v that_o of_o society_n but_o we_o must_v further_o suppose_v as_o another_o evident_a and_o certain_a truth_n that_o our_o father_n before_o the_o reformation_n be_v latin_a christian_n live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o which_o they_o make_v as_o considerable_a a_o party_n as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o that_o from_o father_n to_o son_n throughout_o a_o long_a succession_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n they_o enjoy_v with_o the_o other_o the_o right_n of_o that_o society_n that_o they_o be_v equal_o in_o possession_n of_o it_o with_o the_o other_o common_a assembly_n of_o that_o religion_n have_v a_o part_n in_o the_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o public_a prayer_n in_o the_o read_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n and_o that_o as_o far_o as_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v lawful_a so_o far_o the_o part_n that_o our_o father_n have_v in_o it_o be_v lawful_a also_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o company_n of_o stranger_n or_o unknown_a person_n come_v from_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o america_n or_o the_o southern_a land_n nor_o a_o sort_n of_o people_n drop_v down_o from_o the_o cloud_n who_o be_v new_o join_v together_o with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o society_n but_o person_n and_o whole_a family_n settle_v a_o long_a time_n ago_o who_o be_v join_v together_o with_o they_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n many_o age_n before_o and_o who_o by_o consequence_n be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o right_n of_o that_o society_n although_o have_v they_o be_v stranger_n american_n and_o barbarian_n on_o who_o god_n shall_v have_v sudden_o bestow_v the_o favour_n of_o call_v they_o to_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o the_o true_a holiness_n of_o christanity_n yet_o we_o can_v believe_v that_o by_o that_o thing_n alone_o they_o will_v have_v be_v invest_v in_o all_o the_o right_n of_o that_o society_n as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o have_v have_v it_o by_o a_o long_a possession_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v they_o be_v christian_n from_o father_n to_o son_n and_o neither_o their_o blood_n nor_o their_o birth_n do_v distinguish_v they_o from_o the_o other_o we_o be_v now_o concern_v only_o to_o search_v out_o whether_o that_o which_o happen_v to_o our_o father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v their_o reformation_n their_o condemnation_n by_o the_o pope_n and_o by_o their_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o their_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v able_a to_o spoil_v they_o of_o all_o their_o right_n for_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o they_o be_v fall_v off_o either_o by_o their_o own_o ill_a carriage_n or_o by_o the_o mere_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o must_v yield_v that_o our_o assembly_n be_v unlawful_a and_o criminal_a but_o if_o on_o the_o contrary_a they_o be_v not_o so_o fall_v off_o if_o that_o which_o happen_v to_o they_o do_v nothing_o else_o but_o confirm_v their_o right_n and_o render_v it_o more_o pure_a more_o just_a and_o more_o indisputable_a they_o ought_v also_o
have_v a_o plenitude_n a_o fullness_n of_o power_n 11._o what_o can_v they_o say_v to_o those_o title_n which_o the_o pope_n attribute_v to_o themselves_o of_o be_v the_o spouse_n husband_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o church_n my_o spouse_n say_v innocent_a the_o three_o be_v not_o marry_v to_o i_o if_o she_o do_v not_o bring_v pontif._n i_o something_o she_o have_v give_v i_o a_o dowry_n of_o a_o inestimable_a price_n the_o fullness_n of_o all_o spiritual_a thing_n the_o greatness_n and_o spaciousness_n of_o temporal_n the_o grandeur_n and_o abundance_n both_o of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o she_o have_v bestow_v on_o i_o the_o mitre_n in_o token_n of_o thing_n spiritual_a the_o crown_n for_o a_o sign_n of_o the_o temporal_a the_o mitre_n for_o the_o priesthood_n the_o crown_n for_o the_o kingdom_n substitute_v i_o in_o his_o place_n who_o have_v it_o write_v on_o his_o vestment_n and_o his_o thigh_n the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n after_o the_o same_o stile_n martin_n the_o five_o entitle_v himself_o in_o this_o manner_n in_o the_o instruction_n which_o he_o give_v to_o a_o nuntio_n 1162._o that_o he_o send_v to_o constantinople_n as_o raynaldus_n relate_v the_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o happy_a who_o have_v heavenly_a power_n who_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o successor_n of_o peter_n the_o christ_n or_o anoint_v of_o the_o lord_n the_o lord_n of_o the_o universe_n the_o father_n of_o king_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n the_o sovereign_n high_a priest_n pope_n martin_n 12._o what_o can_v they_o say_v to_o that_o scandalous_a apply_v to_o the_o pope_n those_o passage_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o only_o and_o immediate_o regard_n god_n himself_o and_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n baronius_n relate_v that_o alexander_n the_o three_o make_v his_o entry_n into_o the_o town_n of_o montpellier_n a_o saracen_n prince_n prostrate_v himself_o before_o he_o and_o adore_v he_o as_o the_o holy_a and_o venerable_a god_n of_o the_o christian_n and_o that_o 1162._o those_o that_o be_v of_o the_o pope_n train_n ravish_v with_o admiration_n say_v one_o to_o another_o those_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v worship_v he_o and_o all_o nation_n shall_v do_v he_o service_n so_o in_o the_o council_n of_o late_a an_o one_o complemented_a leo_n the_o ten_o with_o orat._n these_o application_n of_o scripture_n god_n have_v give_v you_o all_o power_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n weep_v not_o daughter_n of_o zion_n behold_v the_o lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n of_o the_o stock_n of_o david_n and_o those_o of_o palermo_n by_o the_o relation_n of_o paulus_n jovius_n prostrate_v at_o the_o foot_n of_o martin_n 3_o the_o four_o make_v their_o address_n to_o he_o in_o the_o same_o word_n that_o they_o say_v to_o jesus_n christ_n before_o their_o altar_n thou_o that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o thou_o that_o take_v away_o the_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o thou_o that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n grant_v we_o thy_o peace_n 13._o what_o can_v our_o father_n say_v to_o those_o strange_a declaration_n of_o some_o pope_n that_o maintain_v that_o all_o law_n reside_v in_o they_o that_o all_o the_o rule_n of_o justice_n be_v enclose_v within_o their_o breast_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o every_o creature_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n that_o they_o have_v in_o their_o hand_n the_o temporal_a and_o spiritual_a sword_n and_o other_o expression_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n so_o paul_n the_o second_o answer_v platina_n who_o request_v he_o that_o he_o will_v judge_n dismiss_v he_o to_o the_o prosecute_n of_o his_o suit_n about_o a_o very_a important_a affair_n before_o the_o auditor_n of_o the_o rota_n because_o the_o sentence_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v give_v be_v unjust_a be_v it_o so_o then_o say_v he_o that_o you_o will_v have_v we_o be_v bring_v to_o be_v try_v before_o the_o judge_n do_v not_o you_o know_v that_o we_o have_v all_o the_o law_n shut_v up_o within_o our_o own_o breast_n in_o the_o close_a of_o that_o business_n platina_n have_v take_v the_o boldness_n to_o say_v he_o will_v demand_v justice_n of_o a_o council_n the_o pope_n put_v he_o into_o a_o strait_a prison_n so_o also_o boniface_n the_o eight_o begin_v one_o of_o his_o decretal_n in_o these_o word_n licet_fw-la romanus_n pontifex_fw-la qui_fw-la jura_fw-la omne_fw-la in_o scrinio_fw-la pectoris_fw-la svi_fw-la censetur_fw-la habere_fw-la it_o be_v the_o same_o person_n who_o design_v the_o necessity_n of_o subject_v one_o self_n to_o the_o pope_n after_o this_o manner_n subesse_fw-la romana_fw-la pontifici_fw-la omni_fw-la humanae_fw-la creaturae_fw-la dicimus_fw-la declaramus_fw-la definimus_fw-la &_o pronuntiamus_fw-la esse_fw-la de_fw-fr necessitate_v salutis_fw-la vit_fw-mi and_o who_o say_v that_o although_o the_o papal_a authority_n be_v give_v to_o a_o man_n and_o that_o though_o it_o be_v exercise_v by_o a_o man_n it_o be_v never_o the_o less_o divine_a 1._o that_o though_o the_o papal_a power_n come_v to_o be_v deprave_v yet_o it_o can_v not_o be_v judge_v by_o any_o man_n but_o by_o god_n alone_o because_o the_o apostle_n have_v say_v that_o the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n and_o be_v himself_o judge_v of_o no_o man_n that_o there_o be_v two_o sword_n that_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n the_o spiritual_a and_o the_o temporal_a the_o one_o of_o the_o which_o have_v its_o use_n for_o the_o church_n and_o the_o other_o the_o church_n herself_o exercise_v the_o one_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o other_o in_o those_o of_o king_n and_o soldier_n but_o who_o management_n depend_v on_o the_o good_a pleasure_n and_o the_o sufferance_n of_o the_o pope_n 14._o what_o can_v our_o father_n say_v to_o those_o prodigious_a pretension_n that_o the_o pope_n make_v over_o emperor_n and_o king_n even_o to_o make_v their_o crown_n depend_v on_o their_o pleasure_n to_o dethrone_v they_o to_o give_v away_o their_o kingdom_n to_o other_o and_o to_o absolve_v their_o subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n every_o one_o know_v what_o the_o decision_n be_v that_o gregory_n the_o seven_o make_v in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 1076._o against_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o four_o who_o he_o have_v depose_v and_o who_o subject_n he_o have_v absolve_v of_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n one_o may_v call_v those_o decision_n the_o dictatorship_n of_o the_o pope_n do_v but_o see_v some_o of_o their_o article_n as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o by_o baronius_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n only_o can_v wear_v the_o imperial_a ornament_n that_o all_o prince_n be_v wont_a to_o kiss_v the_o foot_n of_o the_o pope_n alone_o that_o only_o his_o name_n ought_v to_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o 1076._o church_n that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o chief_a name_n in_o the_o world_n which_o be_v that_o of_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o have_v right_a to_o depose_v emperor_n that_o his_o decree_n can_v be_v make_v void_a by_o none_o whosoever_o he_o be_v but_o that_o he_o alone_o can_v make_v void_a all_o other_o that_o he_o can_v loose_v the_o subject_n of_o wicked_a prince_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n the_o decretal_n be_v full_a of_o the_o like_a attempt_n of_o boniface_n the_o eight_o upon_o philip_n the_o fair_a one_o of_o our_o king_n he_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o excommunicate_v he_o and_o to_o absolve_v his_o subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o in_o fine_a to_o give_v away_o his_o crown_n to_o the_o emperor_n albert._n i_o confess_v that_o he_o be_v punish_v as_o he_o deserve_v and_o that_o the_o french_a on_o this_o occasion_n serve_v their_o prince_n with_o great_a zeal_n the_o same_o platina_n mention_v before_o can_v not_o forbear_v make_v this_o reflection_n on_o the_o 8._o death_n of_o this_o pope_n thus_o die_v this_o boniface_n who_o think_v of_o nothing_o less_o than_o of_o terrify_v emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n and_o all_o man_n that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o inspire_v into_o they_o a_o religious_a respect_n and_o who_o pretend_v to_o give_v and_o take_v away_o by_o force_n whole_a kingdom_n to_o overturn_v and_o re-establish_a all_o man_n by_o the_o mere_a motion_n of_o his_o will._n but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v the_o bad_a success_n of_o boniface_n can_v not_o hinder_v our_o father_n from_o judge_v as_o they_o ought_v of_o these_o insolent_a pretension_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o take_v notice_n that_o those_o who_o make_v their_o very_a religion_n to_o serve_v their_o ambition_n see_v their_o ambition_n have_v no_o bound_n have_v a_o peculiar_a interest_n
to_o feed_v the_o people_n with_o their_o superstition_n for_o they_o be_v such_o as_o enslave_v their_o soul_n where_o true_a piety_n will_v have_v ennoble_v and_o free_v man_n from_o that_o yoke_n which_o they_o will_v have_v impose_v on_o we_o further_o if_o any_o will_v more_o particular_o see_v how_o far_o the_o claim_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v go_v they_o need_v but_o to_o read_v what_o augustine_n steuchus_n library-keeper_n to_o the_o pope_n have_v write_v for_o he_o ascribe_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o very_a same_o temporal_a right_n in_o the_o same_o latitude_n wherein_o the_o old_a roman_a empire_n possess_v they_o and_o he_o prove_v from_o the_o register_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o that_o spain_n hungary_n england_n denmark_n russia_n croatia_n dalmatia_n arragon_n portugal_n bohemia_n swedland_n norway_n dacia_n do_v all_o heretofore_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o all_o that_o pepin_n charlemagne_n henry_n and_o other_o emperor_n give_v to_o the_o church_n bring_v he_o not_o any_o new_a right_n but_o only_o set_v he_o in_o the_o possession_n of_o that_o which_o the_o violence_n of_o the_o barbarian_n have_v wrest_v from_o he_o 15._o what_o can_v our_o father_n say_v to_o those_o unjust_a usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n over_o which_o they_o pretend_v sovereign_o to_o reign_v to_o have_v authority_n to_o decide_v matter_n of_o faith_n to_o make_v new_a law_n to_o dispense_v with_o the_o ancient_a constitution_n to_o call_v council_n to_o transfer_v they_o from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o to_o authorize_v or_o to_o condemn_v they_o to_o judge_v all_o the_o world_n without_o be_v liable_a to_o be_v judge_v of_o any_o in_o a_o word_n of_o make_v all_o thing_n to_o depend_v on_o their_o power_n and_o bind_v all_o church_n to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o its_o decision_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o rule_n of_o discipline_n not_o only_o with_o a_o bare_a external_a obedience_n but_o with_o a_o real_a acquiescence_n of_o their_o conscience_n by_o reason_n of_o which_o they_o be_v accustom_v as_o they_o practise_v it_o even_o at_o this_o present_a in_o their_o bull_n to_o place_n in_o the_o front_n the_o fullness_n of_o their_o power_n and_o to_o adjoyn_v this_o clause_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v dare_v to_o be_v so_o rash_a as_o to_o infringe_v or_o go_v contrary_a to_o their_o decree_n under_o penalty_n of_o incur_v the_o indignation_n of_o god_n and_o the_o bless_a apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n i_o know_v there_o be_v some_o that_o sometime_o do_v very_o strong_o oppose_v these_o pretension_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n that_o some_o council_n do_v labour_n to_o repress_v they_o and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o france_n have_v appear_v often_o enough_o jealous_a of_o its_o liberty_n but_o beside_o that_o those_o opposition_n never_o have_v that_o success_n which_o may_v just_o have_v be_v hope_v for_o on_o the_o part_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o almost_o always_o elude_v they_o beside_o that_o i_o say_v they_o do_v but_o serve_v to_o confirm_v the_o prejudices_fw-la of_o our_o father_n by_o daily_o discover_v to_o they_o more_o and_o more_o of_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 16._o what_o can_v they_o judge_v of_o those_o dispensation_n that_o the_o pope_n give_v in_o the_o business_n of_o marriage_n within_o prohibit_v degree_n against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o case_n of_o vow_n which_o they_o themselves_o hold_v to_o be_v lawful_a and_o in_o divers_a other_o matter_n even_o against_o that_o which_o they_o call_v the_o general_a state_n of_o the_o church_n what_o do_v we_o think_v we_o ought_v to_o say_v at_o present_a say_v gerson_n of_o the_o easiness_n whereby_o dispensation_n be_v give_v by_o the_o pope_n 10._o and_o by_o the_o prelate_n to_o lawful_a oath_n to_o reasonnable_a vow_n to_o a_o vast_a plurality_n of_o benefice_n against_o all_o the_o mind_n or_o as_o he_o speak_v even_o to_o a_o universal_a gainsay_n of_o council_n in_o privilege_n and_o exemption_n that_o destroy_v common_a equity_n who_o can_v reckon_v up_o all_o the_o way_n whereof_o they_o serve_v themselves_o to_o loosen_v the_o force_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o to_o oppose_v and_o destroy_v that_o of_o the_o gospel_n who_o can_v read_v without_o some_o commotion_n that_o which_o innocent_a the_o three_o have_v write_v that_o by_o the_o fullness_n of_o his_o power_n he_o have_v a_o lawful_a power_n to_o dispense_v with_o 4._o that_o that_o be_v beyond_o all_o equity_n and_o that_o that_o the_o glossary_a have_v subjoin_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v against_o a_o apostle_n against_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o against_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o the_o case_n of_o tithe_n it_o be_v add_v that_o he_o can_v dispense_v against_o the_o general_a state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o elsewhere_o the_o gloss_n on_o the_o gloss_n decree_n of_o gratian_n assure_v we_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v sometime_o dispense_v against_o the_o general_n state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o that_o allege_v the_o example_n of_o innocent_a the_o three_o in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n 17._o what_o can_v our_o father_n judge_n of_o those_o vast_a abuse_n that_o be_v commit_v in_o dispence_v with_o the_o ecclesiastical_a function_n give_v most_o frequent_o to_o person_n altogether_o unworthy_a and_o uncapable_a and_o sometime_o to_o child_n to_o the_o great_a scandal_n of_o christianity_n which_o complain_v of_o it_o high_o a_o long_a time_n ago_o they_o prefer_v say_v st._n bernard_n little_a schoolboy_n and_o young_a child_n 42._o to_o church_n dignity_n because_o of_o the_o nobility_n of_o their_o birth_n so_o that_o you_o may_v see_v those_o that_o be_v just_o get_v from_o under_o the_o ferula_fw-la go_v to_o command_v priest_n who_o be_v yet_o more_o fit_a to_o escape_v the_o rod_n then_o to_o be_v employ_v in_o government_n for_o they_o be_v far_o more_o sensible_a of_o the_o pleasure_n of_o be_v free_v from_o their_o master_n then_o of_o that_o of_o become_a master_n themselves_o those_o be_v their_o first_o thought_n but_o afterward_o grow_v more_o bold_a they_o very_o soon_o learn_v the_o art_n of_o appropriate_v the_o altar_n to_o themselves_o and_o of_o empty_v the_o purse_n of_o those_o that_o be_v under_o they_o without_o go_v to_o any_o other_o school_n then_o that_o of_o their_o ambition_n and_o their_o covetousness_n how_o few_o may_v one_o find_v now_o a_o day_n of_o those_o who_o be_v raise_v to_o the_o episcopal_a grandeur_n say_v nicholas_n de_fw-fr clemangis_n who_o have_v either_o read_v or_o know_v how_o to_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n otherwise_o then_o by_o eccles_n first_o beginning_n to_o read_v they_o have_v never_o touch_v any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a bible_n than_o the_o cover_v although_o in_o their_o instalment_n they_o swear_v that_o they_o know_v it_o all_o 18._o what_o can_v our_o father_n say_v to_o that_o simony_n which_o be_v every_o where_o open_o exercise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o all_o thing_n the_o court_n of_o rome_n say_v aeneas_n silvius_n give_v nothing_o without_o money_n it_o sell_v the_o very_a imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 66._o and_o will_v give_v pardon_n of_o sin_n to_o none_o but_o such_o who_o will_v part_v with_o their_o money_n the_o church_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v choose_v for_o his_o spouse_n without_o spot_n and_o blemish_n say_v nicholas_n de_fw-fr clemangis_n be_v in_o these_o day_n praesul_fw-la a_o warehouse_n of_o ambition_n and_o business_n of_o theft_n and_o rapine_n the_o sacrament_n and_o all_o order_n even_o to_o that_o of_o the_o priest_n be_v expose_v to_o sale_n for_o money_n they_o bestow_v favour_n dispensation_n licence_n office_n benefice_n they_o sell_v pardon_n of_o sin_n mass_n and_o the_o very_a administration_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n if_o any_o one_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o a_o bishopric_n he_o need_v but_o to_o get_v himself_o furnish_v with_o money_n yet_o not_o a_o little_a sum_n but_o a_o great_a one_o must_v purchase_v such_o a_o great_a title_n he_o need_v but_o to_o empty_v his_o purse_n to_o obtain_v the_o dignity_n that_o he_o seek_v but_o he_o may_v soon_o after_o fill_v it_o again_o with_o advantage_n by_o more_o way_n than_o one_o if_o any_o one_o desire_n to_o be_v make_v a_o prebendary_a or_o a_o priest_n of_o any_o church_n or_o to_o have_v any_o other_o charge_n it_o matter_n not_o whether_o his_o merit_n or_o his_o life_n or_o his_o manner_n be_v know_v but_o it_o be_v very_o requisite_a it_o shall_v be_v know_v how_o much_o money_n he_o have_v for_o according_a as_o he_o have_v that_o he_o must_v have_v his_o hope_n succeed_v such_o be_v the_o complaint_n that_o honest_a man_n make_v in_o those_o day_n and_o
sentence_n and_o the_o imperial_a edict_n the_o people_n will_v have_v believe_v that_o it_o have_v be_v only_o make_v to_o overthrow_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o maintain_v and_o defend_v their_o evil_n abuse_n and_o impiety_n that_o it_o be_v very_o well_o do_v of_o adrian_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o disorder_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o they_o earnest_o entreat_v he_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n and_o for_o the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o public_a serious_o to_o put_v his_o hand_n to_o reform_v they_o that_o they_o entreat_v he_o also_o to_o allow_v that_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o benefice_n which_o they_o have_v give_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o they_o to_o employ_v against_o the_o turk_n and_o which_o his_o predecessor_n have_v turn_v aside_o to_o other_o use_n shall_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v be_v remit_v into_o the_o public_a treasure_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o according_a to_o their_o natural_a appointment_n and_o as_o for_o the_o remedy_n which_o he_o require_v of_o they_o to_o put_v a_o stop_n to_o the_o course_n of_o the_o lutheran_n error_n that_o they_o see_v none_o more_o proper_a than_o speedy_o to_o call_v a_o free_a and_o christian_a council_n in_o some_o town_n of_o germany_n wherein_o it_o may_v be_v allow_v to_o every_o one_o as_o well_o of_o the_o clergy_n as_o of_o the_o laity_n to_o speak_v free_o notwithstanding_o all_o oath_n and_o contrary_a obligation_n and_o to_o take_v counsel_n together_o for_o that_o which_o they_o shall_v judge_v to_o be_v good_a for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n and_o the_o advantage_n of_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n that_o notwithstanding_o they_o will_v hinder_v luther_n and_o his_o follower_n from_o write_v any_o more_o and_o they_o will_v give_v order_n that_o the_o preacher_n shall_v teach_v nothing_o but_o the_o true_a pure_a and_o sincere_a gospel_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o explication_n receive_v and_o approve_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n this_o answer_n extreme_o displease_v the_o pope_n nuntio_n he_o will_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v speak_v of_o a_o free_a council_n for_o it_o seem_v to_o he_o he_o say_v that_o by_o that_o proposition_n they_o will_v give_v law_n to_o the_o pope_n he_o approve_v yet_o less_o that_o they_o shall_v touch_v upon_o the_o trouble_n of_o germany_n and_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n he_o require_v nothing_o but_o fire_n and_o sword_n against_o the_o lutheran_n therefore_o he_o give_v they_o his_o reply_n in_o writing_n in_o which_o he_o insist_v that_o the_o sentence_n of_o pope_n leo_n and_o the_o imperial_a edict_n of_o worm_n which_o ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v overthrow_v all_o the_o follower_n of_o luther_n shall_v be_v execute_v according_a to_o their_o form_n and_o tenor_n without_o any_o diminution_n and_o as_o to_o the_o demand_n of_o a_o council_n he_o say_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v make_v it_o in_o term_n more_o respectful_a which_o shall_v have_v give_v no_o ground_n of_o jealousy_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o by_o those_o clause_n that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v free_a and_o that_o man_n shall_v be_v absolve_v from_o their_o oath_n they_o seem_v to_o go_v about_o to_o bind_v the_o hand_n of_o his_o holiness_n the_o prince_n will_v notwithstanding_o have_v nothing_o change_v in_o their_o deliberation_n which_o they_o cause_v to_o be_v draw_v up_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o imperial_a edict_n and_o send_v their_o grievance_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o number_n of_o a_o hundred_o article_n which_o they_o call_v centum_fw-la gravamina_fw-la raynaldus_n reckon_v up_o only_o seventy_o seven_o upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o dolgastus_n however_o it_o be_v those_o grief_n explain_v one_o part_n of_o the_o disorder_n that_o reign_v then_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o under_o which_o not_o only_o germany_n but_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o west_n groan_v thus_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o endeavour_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o its_o partisan_n to_o raise_v a_o persecution_n against_o those_o who_o demand_v a_o reformation_n be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o that_o time_n but_o what_o they_o can_v not_o obtain_v at_o nuremberg_n they_o obtain_v elsewhere_o for_o in_o that_o same_o year_n they_o cause_v two_o augustin_n 1523._o monk_n accuse_v of_o lutheranism_n to_o be_v burn_v alive_a who_o suffer_v that_o punishment_n with_o a_o admirable_a constancy_n and_o at_o anvers_n they_o make_v a_o covent_n of_o the_o augustine_n friar_n be_v pull_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n the_o prior_n of_o which_o name_v henry_n suphanus_fw-la have_v before_o suffer_v death_n in_o the_o precede_a year_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n adrian_n enjoy_v the_o papacy_n but_o one_o year_n and_o eight_o month_n or_o thereabouts_o for_o he_o be_v raise_v to_o it_o as_o i_o have_v say_v the_o eight_o of_o january_n 1522._o and_o he_o die_v the_o thirteen_o of_o september_n 1523._o his_o successor_n be_v clement_n the_o seven_o this_o man_n march_v after_o the_o step_n of_o his_o predecessor_n be_v not_o well_o settle_v in_o the_o pontifical_a chair_n before_o he_o turn_v all_o his_o thought_n against_o those_o who_o they_o call_v lutheran_n and_o to_o that_o effect_n have_v be_v advertise_v that_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n have_v bind_v themselves_o to_o meet_v again_o at_o nuremberg_n he_o send_v thither_o cardinal_n campeius_n in_o the_o quality_n of_o his_o legate_n notwithstanding_o he_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n who_o be_v then_o in_o spain_n earnest_o solicit_v he_o to_o employ_v his_o authority_n to_o make_v the_o edict_n of_o worm_n to_o be_v put_v in_o execution_n in_o his_o empire_n and_o to_o dispose_v the_o prince_n to_o it_o his_o legate_n be_v arrive_v at_o nuremberg_n vehement_o insist_v upon_o the_o extirpation_n of_o the_o lutheran_n and_o he_o make_v for_o that_o purpose_n divers_a oration_n in_o the_o assembly_n but_o the_o prince_n will_v not_o follow_v his_o violent_a course_n they_o on_o the_o contrary_a obstinate_o demand_v a_o free_a council_n in_o germany_n and_o ordain_v that_o each_o prince_n and_o each_o state_n shall_v while_o they_o wait_v for_o that_o council_n call_v together_o within_o their_o jurisdiction_n their_o learned_a wise_a and_o pious_a man_n to_o examine_v the_o new_a tenet_n of_o the_o lutheran_n and_o to_o separate_v the_o good_a from_o the_o bad_a in_o they_o and_o to_o examine_v also_o the_o complaint_n of_o their_o nation_n against_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o its_o clergy_n they_o add_v nevertheless_o that_o each_o one_o on_o his_o part_n shall_v do_v what_o he_o can_v to_o make_v the_o edict_n of_o worm_n to_o be_v execute_v and_o that_o in_o fine_a that_o to_o conclude_v something_o firm_a the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n shall_v meet_v together_o within_o a_o certain_a time_n at_o spire_n this_o declaration_n which_o be_v afterward_o draw_v up_o and_o publish_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o imperial_a edict_n extreme_o provoke_v the_o pope_n and_o all_o his_o creature_n they_o complain_v of_o this_o that_o in_o expectation_n of_o a_o council_n they_o will_v submit_v the_o matter_n of_o religion_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o few_o wise_a learned_a and_o pious_a person_n say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o spread_v abroad_o every_o where_o the_o poison_n of_o heresy_n for_o thus_o raynaldus_n relate_v it_o they_o can_v not_o endure_v the_o proposition_n of_o a_o free_a council_n but_o above_o all_o thing_n they_o loud_o cry_v out_o of_o this_o that_o under_o that_o pretence_n they_o will_v defer_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o pope_n sentence_n and_o the_o edict_n of_o worm_n against_o the_o lutheran_n who_o blood_n and_o destruction_n they_o only_o demand_v clement_n make_v great_a complaint_n to_o the_o emperor_n by_o the_o letter_n which_o he_o send_v he_o into_o spain_n wherein_o to_o animate_v he_o the_o more_o he_o persuade_v he_o that_o that_o be_v a_o manifest_a breach_n of_o his_o authority_n and_o a_o form_a design_n to_o withdraw_v themselves_o entire_o from_o his_o obedience_n and_o as_o these_o solicitation_n be_v extreme_o vehement_a and_o urgent_a they_o force_v the_o emperor_n to_o write_v into_o germany_n to_o the_o prince_n and_o to_o all_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n that_o it_o be_v his_o intention_n that_o they_o shall_v punctual_o execute_v his_o edict_n of_o worm_n that_o they_o shall_v make_v that_o of_o nuremberg_n void_a and_o forbid_v they_o to_o hold_v the_o diet_n of_o spire_n but_o before_o his_o letter_n come_v to_o germany_n the_o legate_n campeius_n have_v draw_v off_o one_o part_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n prince_n for_o the_o most_o part_n ecclesiastic_n and_o have_v make_v they_o to_o meet_v at_o ratisbon_n under_o a_o pretence_n
of_o a_o shadow_n of_o reformation_n that_o he_o have_v propound_v which_o consist_v only_o in_o most_o trivial_a matter_n he_o cause_v they_o to_o make_v a_o league_n among_o they_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o lutheran_n soon_o after_o they_o see_v the_o effect_n of_o this_o league_n appear_v for_o ferdinand_n and_o the_o legate_n be_v go_v into_o austria_n they_o condemn_v to_o death_n some_o person_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n clement_n elsewhere_o take_v the_o same_o care_n for_o all_o place_n which_o they_o take_v in_o germany_n to_o hinder_v the_o progress_n of_o the_o reformation_n he_o write_v upon_o that_o subject_n into_o switzerland_n into_o bohemia_n france_n poland_n swedeland_n denmark_n and_o he_o stir_v up_o every_o where_o the_o prince_n magistrate_n and_o prelate_n to_o overthrow_v the_o reform_a wherefore_o they_o behold_v soon_o after_o under_o his_o pontificate_n the_o inquisition_n take_v up_o in_o that_o pursuit_n the_o prison_n fill_v with_o prisoner_n and_o the_o scaffold_n and_o the_o stake_n fill_v almost_o general_o in_o all_o place_n that_o own_v his_o authority_n it_o be_v at_o this_o time_n that_o antonius_n pratensis_n cardinal_n and_o archbishop_n of_o sens_n hold_v a_o provincial_a synod_n at_o paris_n the_o ninety_o second_o article_n of_o which_o be_v frame_v in_o these_o term_n we_o entreat_v the_o most_o christian_n king_n our_o prince_n and_o sovereign_a lord_n by_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o according_a to_o his_o singular_a zeal_n and_o incredible_a devotion_n for_o the_o christian_a religion_n that_o he_o will_v sudden_o banish_v from_o the_o land_n of_o his_o jurisdiction_n all_o heretic_n and_o that_o he_o will_v extirpate_v that_o deadly_a and_o horrible_a plague_n which_o increase_v every_o day_n more_o and_o more_o the_o ninety_o three_o be_v frame_v after_o this_o manner_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o orthodox_n prince_n if_o they_o will_v have_v any_o care_n for_o the_o christian_a name_n and_o will_v hinder_v the_o ruin_n of_o religion_n ought_v necessary_o to_o use_v all_o their_o endeavour_n to_o extirpate_v and_o destroy_v heretic_n that_o archbishop_n be_v very_o much_o interest_v in_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o ancient_a abuse_n for_o we_o find_v in_o the_o dialogue_n of_o the_o two_o parishioner_n of_o 1_o s._n hilary_n montanus_n that_o he_o be_v cardinal_n archbishop_n of_o sens_n bishop_n of_o alby_n bishop_n of_o valence_n bishop_n of_o gap_n and_o abbot_n of_o fleury_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v astonish_v if_o he_o declaim_v so_o much_o against_o the_o reformation_n he_o be_v in_o effect_n one_o of_o those_o who_o oppose_v themselves_o to_o it_o in_o france_n with_o the_o great_a heat_n and_o if_o any_o will_v know_v his_o character_n they_o need_v but_o look_v to_o that_o which_o the_o author_n of_o that_o same_o dialogue_n say_v of_o he_o this_o duke_n prat_n be_v he_o not_o as_o great_a a_o prelate_n as_o a_o s._n hilary_n of_o poitiers_n a_o s._n martin_n of_o tours_n a_o s._n german_n of_o auxerre_n and_o as_o a_o s._n lupus_fw-la of_o troy_n he_o have_v alone_o full_a as_o many_o bishopric_n as_o all_o those_o admirable_a saint_n have_v together_o and_o moreover_o the_o abbey_n in_o which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o s._n benorist_n but_o he_o have_v not_o do_v so_o many_o miracle_n as_o all_o those_o saint_n and_o he_o never_o reside_v in_o any_o of_o those_o diocese_n nor_o ever_o perform_v any_o other_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n than_o that_o only_a ordinance_n against_o martin_n luther_n philip_n melancthon_n oecolampadin_n zuinghus_fw-la for_o as_o yet_o calvin_n and_o beza_n be_v not_o talk_v of_o it_o be_v this_o good_a prelate_n to_o who_o they_o attribute_v the_o take_v away_o of_o the_o pragmatic_n sanction_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o pure_a observation_n of_o the_o ancient_a canon_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n and_o the_o have_v make_v the_o agreement_n between_o king_n francis_n the_o first_o and_o leo_n the_o ten_o which_o have_v destroy_v all_o the_o apostolical_a discipline_n in_o france_n and_o abolish_v the_o canonical_a election_n and_o subject_v france_n to_o a_o deplorable_a servitude_n the_o same_o spirit_n that_o the_o cardinal_n du_fw-mi prat_n have_v bring_v into_o france_n reign_v then_o in_o england_n scotland_n flanders_n austria_n poland_n and_o universal_o in_o all_o place_n where_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n extend_v itself_o for_o there_o be_v nothing_o talk_v of_o there_o but_o the_o extreme_a punishment_n which_o they_o inflict_v on_o those_o pretend_a heretic_n and_o their_o very_a judge_n who_o touch_v with_o some_o compassion_n do_v not_o ready_o do_v their_o duty_n according_a to_o the_o humour_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o remain_v unpunished_a for_o it_o be_v for_o this_o reason_n that_o pope_n clement_n charge_v cardinal_n campeius_n his_o legate_n to_o remove_v those_o inquisitor_n who_o be_v in_o the_o low-countries_n and_o to_o put_v other_o in_o their_o place_n who_o shall_v better_o acquit_v themselves_o of_o so_o detestable_a a_o service_n as_o raynaldus_n relate_v but_o while_o they_o act_v after_o this_o manner_n the_o light_n of_o the_o reformation_n do_v yet_o spread_v itself_o abroad_o in_o divers_a place_n through_o a_o admirable_a blessing_n of_o god_n who_o have_v always_o make_v the_o ash_n of_o his_o martyr_n the_o seed_n of_o his_o church_n for_o not_o only_a saxony_n have_v receive_v it_o but_o also_o a_o great_a part_n of_o germany_n a_o great_a part_n of_o switzerland_n swedeland_n denmark_n prussia_n and_o livonia_n also_o in_o the_o month_n of_o april_n in_o the_o year_n 1529._o a_o assembly_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o other_o state_n of_o germany_n be_v hold_v at_o spire_n whither_o clement_n do_v not_o fail_v to_o send_v a_o nuntio_n the_o first_o thing_n they_o do_v there_o be_v to_o reject_v the_o assembly_n at_o the_o city_n of_o strasburgh_n under_o a_o pretence_n that_o it_o have_v abolish_v the_o use_n of_o the_o mass_n without_o wait_v for_o the_o imperial_a diet._n this_o violent_a procedure_n be_v quick_o after_o follow_v by_o a_o decree_n that_o ferdinand_n archduke_n of_o austria_n and_o some_o other_o prince_n who_o take_v part_n with_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n make_v and_o who_o the_o emperor_n have_v express_o choose_v for_o his_o deputy_n commissioner_n they_o ordain_v therefore_o in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o those_o who_o till_o then_o have_v observe_v the_o edict_n of_o worm_n that_o be_v to_o say_v who_o not_o only_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o reformation_n but_o who_o have_v persecute_v it_o with_o all_o their_o might_n shall_v for_o the_o future_a do_v the_o like_a and_o force_v their_o subject_n to_o do_v the_o same_o and_o that_o as_o for_o those_o in_o who_o country_n that_o new_a doctrine_n have_v be_v spread_v abroad_o provide_v they_o can_v not_o extirpate_v it_o without_o put_v themselves_o into_o a_o manifest_a danger_n of_o stir_v up_o trouble_n it_o shall_v be_v their_o part_n at_o least_o to_o hinder_v any_o thing_n more_o from_o be_v innovate_v till_o the_o call_n of_o a_o council_n second_o they_o ordain_v that_o above_o all_o thing_n the_o doctrine_n which_o oppose_v the_o substantial_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n shall_v neither_o be_v receive_v nor_o propound_v by_o any_o in_o all_o the_o compass_n of_o germany_n and_o that_o the_o mass_n shall_v not_o be_v abrogate_a in_o the_o three_o place_n they_o decree_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o allow_v preacher_n in_o any_o place_n to_o explain_v the_o gospel_n otherwise_o than_o by_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o father_n in_o fine_a they_o ordain_v grievous_a penalty_n against_o the_o printer_n and_o bookseller_n who_o shall_v print_v or_o vend_n for_o the_o future_a the_o book_n that_o contain_v that_o new_a doctrine_n the_o other_o prince_n and_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n behold_v this_o manifest_a oppression_n think_v themselves_o bind_v to_o make_v a_o act_n of_o protestation_n to_o the_o contrary_n they_o remonstrate_v therefore_o that_o that_o new_a decree_n contradict_v that_o that_o have_v be_v pass_v in_o the_o precede_a assembly_n where_o every_o one_o be_v to_o be_v free_a in_o respect_n of_o his_o religion_n that_o they_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o hinder_v the_o other_o prince_n and_o state_n from_o enjoy_v that_o liberty_n but_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a they_o pray_v god_n that_o he_o will_v give_v they_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o truth_n that_o they_o can_v not_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n approve_v of_o the_o reason_n for_o which_o they_o will_v allow_v they_o to_o retain_v the_o evangelical_n doctrine_n to_o wit_n lest_o they_o shall_v fall_v into_o new_a trouble_n for_o that_o will_v be_v to_o confess_v that_o it_o will_v be_v good_a to_o renounce_v that_o doctrine_n
for_o that_o they_o have_v refer_v that_o business_n to_o a_o national_a council_n in_o defect_n of_o a_o general_n one_o and_o he_o maintain_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v very_o much_o wound_v in_o that_o reference_n and_o that_o a_o national_a council_n can_v not_o deliberate_v about_o matter_n of_o religion_n in_o fine_a after_o a_o great_a many_o dispute_v which_o only_o serve_v more_o and_o more_o to_o discover_v the_o obstinate_a resolution_n that_o the_o roman_a party_n have_v take_v up_o not_o to_o suffer_v a_o reformation_n this_o diet_n end_v with_o a_o decree_n of_o the_o emperor_n which_o refer_v the_o whole_a affair_n to_o a_o general_n council_n or_o a_o national_a one_o in_o germany_n or_o to_o a_o imperial_a assembly_n if_o they_o can_v not_o obtain_v a_o council_n and_o that_o nevertheless_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o ausburg_n shall_v remain_v suspend_v all_o this_o pass_a in_o the_o year_n 1541._o see_v here_o what_o the_o success_n of_o the_o conference_n of_o ratisbon_n be_v the_o year_n follow_v which_o be_v 1542._o the_o pope_n assign_v the_o council_n to_o be_v hold_v at_o trent_n in_o the_o month_n of_o november_n he_o send_v a_o bull_n to_o the_o emperor_n in_o spain_n and_o after_o to_o the_o king_n exhort_v they_o to_o send_v their_o ambassador_n thither_o and_o he_o himself_o depute_v thither_o three_o cardinal_n in_o quality_n of_o legate_n he_o send_v thither_o some_o bishop_n also_o but_o this_o convocation_n have_v not_o then_o any_o effect_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o war_n that_o be_v carry_v on_o about_o the_o same_o time_n between_o king_n francis_n the_o first_o and_o the_o emperor_n and_o this_o latter_a see_v himself_o to_o have_v two_o war_n upon_o his_o hand_n that_o with_o france_n and_o the_o other_o with_o the_o turk_n make_v a_o new_a decree_n at_o spire_n by_o which_o he_o give_v peace_n to_o the_o protestant_n but_o more_o than_o that_o he_o ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v make_v choice_n of_o some_o learned_a and_o well-meaning_a person_n to_o draw_v up_o a_o formulary_a of_o the_o reformation_n that_o the_o prince_n shall_v do_v the_o same_o and_o that_o all_o those_o piece_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o next_o diet_n they_o shall_v there_o resolve_v with_o a_o common_a consent_n that_o which_o they_o shall_v judge_v fit_a to_o be_v keep_v about_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n till_o the_o meeting_n of_o a_o council_n this_o decree_n be_v make_v in_o the_o year_n 1544._o but_o the_o pope_n be_v so_o nettle_v at_o this_o that_o he_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n in_o a_o very_a threaten_a style_n complain_v above_o all_o thing_n of_o this_o that_o he_o have_v not_o refer_v that_o which_o concern_v religion_n to_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o he_o have_v favour_v those_o who_o be_v rebel_n to_o the_o apostolic_a see_n some_o time_n after_o king_n francis_n the_o first_o and_o the_o emperor_n make_v a_o peace_n and_o one_o of_o the_o article_n of_o their_o agreement_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v defend_v the_o ancient_a religion_n that_o they_o shall_v employ_v their_o endeavour_n for_o the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n that_o they_o shall_v joint_o demand_v of_o the_o pope_n the_o call_n of_o a_o council_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v labour_v to_o subdue_v the_o protestant_n this_o oblige_v the_o pope_n to_o prevent_v they_o he_o therefore_o again_o assign_v the_o council_n to_o be_v hold_v at_o trent_n the_o fifteen_o day_n of_o march_n 1545._o and_o dispatch_v away_o his_o legate_n thither_o but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o resolve_v to_o use_v all_o his_o endeavour_n to_o oblige_v the_o emperor_n to_o turn_v his_o arm_n against_o the_o protestant_n to_o oppose_v they_o at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o the_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a sword_n or_o to_o say_v better_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o war_n may_v serve_v he_o for_o a_o pretence_n to_o elude_v the_o council_n for_o that_o purpose_n he_o make_v use_v of_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o nuntio_n and_o afterward_o of_o that_o cardinal_n farnese_n who_o he_o send_v to_o the_o emperor_n as_o his_o legate_n who_o chief_a pretence_n be_v the_o refusal_n which_o the_o protestant_n have_v propound_v anew_o against_o his_o pretend_a council_n he_o make_v therefore_o very_o powerful_a solicitation_n to_o the_o emperor_n by_o his_o legate_n with_o offers_z to_o aid_v he_o with_o man_n and_o money_n and_o even_o to_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v assist_v by_o the_o prince_n of_o italy_n and_o the_o emperor_n who_o on_o his_o side_n be_v very_o glad_a to_o take_v this_o occasion_n to_o subdue_v germany_n to_o himself_o ready_o accept_v of_o this_o proposition_n so_o that_o a_o war_n be_v conclude_v between_o they_o but_o the_o conclusion_n be_v keep_v very_o secret_a till_o the_o time_n of_o execution_n notwithstanding_o the_o better_a to_o cover_v this_o design_n the_o emperor_n appoint_v a_o conference_n of_o learned_a man_n to_o be_v hold_v at_o ratisbon_n upon_o the_o subject_n of_o religion_n according_a to_o his_o last_o decree_n but_o he_o do_v not_o fail_v to_o cite_v the_o archbishop_n of_o cologne_n to_o appear_v before_o he_o who_o have_v embrace_v the_o reformation_n and_o afterward_o excommunicate_v he_o and_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o archbishopric_a and_o as_o for_o the_o conference_n at_o ratisbon_n which_o give_v some_o jealousy_n to_o the_o bishop_n who_o be_v already_o assemble_v at_o trent_n it_o be_v quick_o after_o break_v by_o the_o unjust_a condition_n that_o some_o monk_n who_o be_v there_o as_o the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o emperor_n will_v impose_v on_o the_o protestant_a divine_n the_o council_n be_v open_v the_o thirteen_o of_o december_n of_o the_o same_o year_n 1545._o but_o in_o fine_a after_o a_o great_a many_o artifices_fw-la and_o dissimulation_n able_a to_o have_v lull_v asleep_o the_o most_o vigilant_a after_o a_o great_a many_o contrary_a assurance_n give_v to_o the_o protestant_n the_o emperor_n send_v the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n in_o post_n to_o rome_n to_o give_v the_o pope_n notice_n that_o he_o shall_v make_v his_o troop_n march_v with_o all_o diligence_n the_o treaty_n which_o they_o have_v make_v together_o be_v publish_v the_o eight_o and_o twenty_o of_o july_n 1546._o bearing_n this_o among_o other_o thing_n that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v employ_v his_o arm_n and_o open_a force_n to_o make_v those_o german_n who_o shall_v reject_v the_o council_n return_v to_o the_o ancient_a religion_n and_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o holy_a see_v and_o the_o emperor_n soon_o after_o open_o declare_v himself_o as_o well_o by_o the_o letter_n which_o he_o write_v to_o divers_a city_n in_o germany_n to_o the_o elector_n of_o cologne_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o wirtemburg_n as_o by_o the_o answer_n that_o his_o minister_n give_v to_o the_o ambassador_n of_o those_o town_n who_o be_v with_o he_o the_o pope_n on_o his_o side_n present_o publish_v a_o bull_n date_v the_o fifteen_o of_o july_n by_o which_o he_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v make_v solemn_a procession_n exhort_v all_o christian_n to_o put_v up_o prayer_n to_o god_n for_o the_o happy_a success_n of_o the_o war_n which_o the_o emperor_n and_o himself_o have_v undertake_v at_o their_o common_a charge_n against_o the_o german_n who_o shall_v either_o profess_v heresy_n or_o protect_v it_o before_o this_o he_o have_v write_v to_o the_o swisser_n letter_n date_v the_o three_o of_o june_n by_o which_o he_o give_v they_o notice_n of_o the_o emperor_n design_n pray_v they_o to_o send_v all_o the_o succour_n they_o can_v possible_o the_o emperor_n will_v at_o the_o beginning_n cover_v this_o war_n with_o another_o pretence_n than_o that_o of_o religion_n but_o the_o pope_n will_v never_o suffer_v he_o to_o do_v it_o so_o that_o the_o emperor_n have_v no_o further_a way_n leave_v to_o disguise_v himself_o begin_v with_o the_o proscribe_v of_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n and_o the_o landgrave_n of_o hessia_n and_o moreover_o he_o send_v his_o army_n into_o the_o field_n the_o protestant_a prince_n on_o their_o part_n take_v up_o arm_n also_o for_o their_o just_a defence_n the_o success_n of_o this_o war_n be_v not_o so_o happy_a for_o the_o protestant_n all_o germany_n see_v itself_o soon_o enslave_v under_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o according_a to_o all_o humane_a appearance_n the_o reformation_n also_o have_v be_v present_o destroy_v if_o god_n who_o never_o utter_o forsake_v his_o church_n have_v not_o provide_v for_o it_o by_o his_o providence_n it_o happen_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n quarrel_v about_o those_o temporal_a interest_n which_o be_v far_o more_o prevalent_a in_o their_o mind_n than_o that_o of_o religion_n which_o fall_v out_o because_o the_o emperor_n will_v not_o